Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n cause_n just_a separation_n 3,235 5 9.9864 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
B06703 The guide in controversies, or, A rational account of the doctrine of Roman-Catholicks concerning the ecclesiastical guide in controversies of religion reflecting on the later writings of Protestants, particularly of Archbishop Lawd and Dr. Stillingfleet on this subject. / By R.H. R. H., 1609-1678. 1667 (1667) Wing W3447A; ESTC R186847 357,072 413

There are 43 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

diverse_o fanci_v the_o true_a cause_n thereof_o then_o in_o all_o this_o say_v nothing_o at_o all_o be_v say_v §_o 20_o 12._o 2_o again_o for_o schism_n catholic_n affirm_v that_o any_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n which_o for_o what_o cause_n soever_o and_o particular_o for_o this_o the_o church_n require_v his_o assent_n and_o conformity_n to_o the_o definition_n of_o such_o her_o council_n do_v actual_o relinquish_v and_o separate_v from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o present_a church-catholick_n be_v schismatical_a mean_v here_o *_o by_o catholic_n church_n the_o present_a true_a superior_a ecclesiastical_a guide_n and_o the_o christian_a congregation_n join_v with_o they_o in_o the_o sense_n explain_v before_o disc_n 2._o prop._n 12._o §_o 23._o and_o *_o by_o external_n communion_n the_o church_n public_a prayer_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o participation_n of_o her_o sacrament_n and_o *_o by_o actual_a relinquish_a and_o separate_v either_o 1_o the_o set_n up_o or_o join_v with_o a_o anti-communion_n or_o 2_o a_o voluntary_a absent_v once_o self_n from_o the_o church_n communion_n or_o at_o least_o 3_o the_o incur_v of_o a_o excommunication_n or_o separation_n inflict_v by_o the_o church_n for_o a_o nonconformity_n to_o her_o decree_n of_o which_o see_v dr._n hammond_n concession_n below_o §_o 22._o n._n 2._o §_o 21_o the_o reason_n because_o 1_o all_o separation_n from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o this_o church_n that_o be_v make_v out_o of_o a_o nonconformity_n to_o any_o thing_n define_v by_o these_o superior_n be_v judge_v causeless_a upon_o the_o former_a account_n give_v §_o 6._o and_o §_o 14._o since_o they_o can_v require_v no_o unjust_a condition_n of_o their_o communion_n as_o the_o assent_n or_o subscription_n to_o a_o error_n that_o any_o inferior_a can_v just_o judge_v or_o certain_o know_v to_o be_v so_o and_o this_o because_o in_o necessary_n these_o church-governor_n can_v misse-guide_a §_o 6_o 9_o and_o of_o what_o or_o how_o much_o be_v to_o be_v account_v necessary_a the_o judgement_n also_o belong_v to_o these_o guide_n not_o their_o subject_n see_v disc_n 2._o prop._n 6._o of_o who_o also_o divine_o assist_v it_o be_v rational_o presume_v that_o to_o thing_n judge_v no_o way_n necessary_a they_o will_v never_o enjoin_v assent_n upon_o the_o church_n censure_n but_o last_o suppose_v not_o grant_v that_o they_o shall_v err_v in_o some_o non-necessary_a to_o which_o notwithstanding_o they_o require_v assent_v yet_o can_v particular_a man_n have_v in_o such_o matter_n any_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o a_o infallible_a assurance_n of_o the_o contrary_a which_o the_o church_n can_v discover_v 42._o discover_v see_v disc_n 2._o §._o 15._o &_o 42._o and_o therefore_o can_v just_o on_o any_o such_o account_n withdraw_v their_o submission_n and_o for_o this_o reason_n also_o these_o superior_n in_o whatever_o decree_n they_o make_v or_o impose_v do_v never_o fall_v actual_o or_o causal_o into_o heresy_n or_o schism_n as_o who_o be_v not_o from_o other_o but_o all_o other_o from_o they_o direct_v to_o learn_v in_o spiritual_a matter_n what_o be_v true_a and_o lawful_a and_o to_o what_o they_o be_v or_o be_v not_o to_o conform_v but_o 2_o next_o if_o any_o separation_n from_o this_o church_n shall_v be_v make_v for_o any_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n in_o it_o to_o which_o a_o assent_n or_o a_o conformity_n be_v no_o way_n require_v by_o it_o this_o will_v still_o be_v a_o high_a schism_n because_o more_o void_a of_o any_o just_a pretence_n of_o this_o matter_n thus_o s._n austin_n 48._o austin_n epist_n 48._o speak_v not_o of_o the_o internal_a but_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o define_v against_o rebaptisation_n be_v upon_o this_o forsake_v by_o the_o donatist_n fieri_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la ut_fw-la aliquis_fw-la habeat_fw-la justam_fw-la causam_fw-la quâ_fw-la communionem_fw-la svam_fw-la separaret_fw-la à_fw-la communione_fw-la orbis_fw-la terrarum_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o de_fw-la unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la c._n 3._o quicunque_fw-la à_fw-la chri●ti_fw-la corpore_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ita_fw-la dissentiunt_fw-la ut_fw-la eorum_fw-la communio_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la cum_fw-la toto_fw-la quacunque_fw-la diffunditur_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o aliquâ_fw-la parte_fw-la separatâ_fw-la in●eniatur_fw-la manifestum_fw-la est_fw-la choose_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o catholicâ_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la cum_fw-la toto_fw-la i._n e._n *_o with_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o body_n which_o be_v totum_fw-la integrum_fw-la before_o some_o separate_v from_o it_o or_o after_o the_o separation_n when_o now_o the_o former_a totum_fw-la be_v divide_v *_o with_o that_o part_n of_o the_o totum_fw-la from_o which_o the_o other_o part_n separate_v which_o body_n that_o be_v part_v from_o be_v still_o the_o total_a catholic_n church_n of_o which_o total_a only_o s._n austin_n speak_v though_o the_o divide_a part_n or_o part_n for_o the_o amplitude_n of_o this_o totum_fw-la be_v a_o casual_a thing_n nor_o always_o the_o same_o shall_v in_o time_n swell_v to_o a_o great_a magnitude_n than_o it_o concern_v this_o matter_n also_o thus_o dr._n hammond_n 10._o hammond_n of_o schism_n p._n 10._o in_o his_o book_n of_o schism_n c._n 1._o for_o the_o universal_a or_o true_o catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o in_o st._n augustine_n opinion_n possible_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o just_a cause_n for_o any_o to_o separate_v from_o it_o nor_o consequent_o apology_n to_o be_v make_v for_o those_o that_o on_o any_o whether_o true_a or_o pretend_a cause_n whatsoever_o have_v real_o incur_v this_o guilt_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o occasion_n or_o cause_n or_o motive_n of_o any_o man_n schism_n that_o be_v worth_a the_o produce_v or_o hee_v in_o this_o matter_n the_o one_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o force_n and_o moment_n and_o by_o consequence_n pertinent_a to_o be_v inquire_v into_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n whether_o this_o charge_n be_v sufficient_o prove_v or_o confess_v i._n e._n whether_o he_o that_o be_v thus_o accuse_v stand_v real_o guilty_a of_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n thus_o dr._n hammond_n where_o it_o will_v be_v ridiculous_a for_o any_o to_o say_v that_o by_o separation_n from_o the_o church-catholick_n he_o mean_v voluntary_a separation_n and_o then_o that_o by_o voluntary_a separation_n he_o mean_v a_o separation_n without_o any_o just_a cause_n move_v he_o to_o it_o for_o this_o be_v only_a say_n there_o can_v never_o be_v just_a cause_n of_o a_o voluntary_a separation_n from_o the_o church-catholick_n without_o any_o just_a cause_n neither_o can_v the_o doctor_n be_v mean_v here_o be_v that_o one_o indeed_o may_v not_o separate_v but_o yet_o may_v by_o excommunication_n be_v separate_v for_o his_o nonconforming_a in_o something_o to_o the_o church-catholick_n without_o schism_n for_o elsewhere_o 9_o elsewhere_o answ_n to_o cath._n gentlm_n p_o 9_o he_o declare_v continuance_n in_o i_o add_v or_o incurrin_n excommunication_n to_o be_v actual_a schism_n suppose_v that_o if_o one_o will_v submit_v to_o that_o which_o be_v lawful_a not_o that_o which_o he_o think_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o submit_v to_o he_o may_v be_v absolve_v and_o free_v from_o it_o now_o the_o church-catholick_n he_o hold_v here_o can_v never_o require_v unjust_a condition_n of_o her_o communion_n because_o upon_o such_o term_n he_o allow_v a_o departure_n may_v be_v without_o schism_n here_o then_o take_v his_o word_n in_o their_o plain_a sense_n since_o the_o church-catholick_n can_v be_v deny_v to_o be_v such_o a_o church_n as_o give_v law_n and_o require_v certain_a condition_n of_o her_o external_a communion_n and_o since_o the_o doctor_n affirm_v 12._o affirm_v of_o schism_n c_o 2._o n._n 3.5_o 12._o that_o where_o a_o church_n require_v unjust_a condition_n of_o her_o communion_n one_o may_v depart_v from_o or_o continue_v out_o of_o it_z without_o schism_n it_o seem_v to_o follow_v that_o the_o doctor_n hold_v here_o that_o the_o church-catholick_n can_n never_o require_v such_o unjust_a condition_n which_o how_o it_o consist_v with_o what_o be_v quote_v out_o of_o he_o disc_n 1_o §_o 5._o i_o know_v not_o and_o hence_o that_o she_o do_v not_o require_v such_o at_o luther_n appearance_n yet_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o there_o be_v no_o church_n then_o extant_a one_o or_o more_o of_o which_o must_v be_v the_o catholic_n to_o the_o condition_n of_o who_o external_a communion_n protestant_n will_v submit_v and_o from_o who_o external_a communion_n they_o depart_v not_o see_v disc_n 1._o §_o 55._o n._n 4._o and_o then_o we_o see_v what_o follower_n upon_o these_o principle_n of_o dr._n hammond_n §_o 23_o mean_a while_n the_o catholic_n grant_v 1_o st_z that_o the_o several_a part_n of_o this_o body_n may_v without_o schism_n separate_a or_o differ_v from_o one_o another_o in_o any_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n wherein_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o
supernatural_a verity_n which_o god_n have_v reveal_v in_o christ_n his_o son_n 2_o lie_v the_o use_n of_o such_o holy_a ceremony_n and_o sacrament_n as_o he_o have_v institute_v and_o appoint_v 3_o lie_n a_o union_n or_o connexion_n of_o man_n in_o this_o profession_n and_o use_v of_o these_o sacrament_n under_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o guide_n appoint_v authorize_v and_o sanctify_v to_o direct_v and_o lead_v they_o in_o the_o happy_a way_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n a_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n therefore_o have_v the_o two_o first_o property_n yet_o fail_v in_o the_o last_o a_o due_a union_n and_o connexion_n with_o the_o whole_a under_o its_o lawful_a superior_n of_o which_o see_v 2_o disc_n §_o 24._o want_v something_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o see_v also_o l._n 1._o c._n 13._o where_o he_o deny_v schismatic_n to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n i._n e._n catholic_n because_o though_o they_o retain_v a_o entire_a profession_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n as_o do_v say_v he_o the_o luciserians_n and_o some_o other_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o schism_n yet_o they_o break_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o refuse_v to_o submit_v themselves_o and_o yield_v obedience_n to_o their_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o guide_n and_o their_o communion_n and_o conjunction_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o god_n people_n be_v in_o some_o thing_n only_o and_o not_o absolute_o in_o all_o wherein_o they_o have_v and_o aught_o to_o have_v fellowship_n thus_o dr._n field_n and_o much_o what_o the_o same_o you_o may_v find_v in_o dr._n ferne_n 48._o ferne_n the_o case_n between_o two_o church_n p._n 48._o quote_v before_o in_o 2_o disc_n §_o 24._o who_o on_o this_o account_n make_v presbyterian_o schismatic_n next_o see_v dr._n hammand_v treatise_n of_o schism_n where_o he_o make_v *_o that_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o which_o schism_n be_v a_o breach_n to_o consist_v in_o the_o preserve_a all_o those_o relation_n wherein_o each_o member_n be_v concern_v one_o towards_o another_o among_o which_o be_v that_o of_o subordination_n the_o unity_n whereof_o consist_v in_o a_o constant_a due_a subjection_n and_o obedience_n of_o all_o inferior_n to_o all_o their_o superior_n etc._n etc._n 3._o etc._n c._n 3._o §._o 3._o and_o *_o the_o deny_v this_o obedience_n in_o any_o particular_a lawful_a command_n of_o these_o superior_n or_o the_o cast_n off_o all_o obedience_n together_o dethrone_v they_o etc._n etc._n to_o be_v schism_n 9_o schism_n c._n 3._o §._o 9_o but_o this_o lawful_a command_n and_o so_o schism_n in_o disobey_v it_o may_v be_v in_o no_o fundamental_a point_n last_o thus_o bishop_n branhall_n 8._o branhall_n reply_v to_o chalced_a p._n 8._o that_o all_o schism_n be_v about_o essential_o of_o religion_n be_v a_o strange_a paradox_n many_o schism_n have_v arisen_a in_o the_o church_n about_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n about_o precedency_n about_o jurisdiction_n about_o right_n and_o liberty_n of_o particular_a church_n about_o matter_n of_o fact_n obstinacy_n in_o a_o small_a matter_n be_v enough_o to_o make_v a_o schism_n from_o all_o these_o i_o think_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o a_o separation_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n or_o our_o lawful_a superior_n for_o any_o thing_n true_a or_o lawful_a the_o practice_n or_o belief_n of_o which_o be_v enjoin_v by_o she_o as_o a_o condition_n of_o her_o communion_n though_o this_o be_v not_o in_o fundamental_o be_v schism_n and_o inconsistent_a with_o be_v a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n learn_v protestant_n consent_v and_o then_o to_o learn_v in_o matter_n controvert_v and_o doubtful_a what_o be_v true_a and_o what_o be_v lawful_a we_o know_v to_o who_o judgement_n inferior_n and_o subject_n be_v direct_v to_o repair_v and_o if_o they_o will_v sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n themselves_o and_o judge_v it_o and_o happen_v to_o mistake_v i_o leave_v they_o to_o read_v their_o doom_n in_o d._n hammonds_n c._n 2._o of_o schism_n §_o 8._o now_o which_o way_n soever_o they_o turn_v sure_a to_o sin_n remain_v in_o error_n and_o schism_n on_o the_o one_o side_n if_o they_o desert_n upon_o this_o judgement_n the_o church_n communion_n and_o by_o fly_v from_o that_o advancing_z to_z lying_z and_o hypocrisy_n on_o the_o other_o side_n i._n e._n if_o they_o external_o profess_v contrary_a to_o their_o persuasion_n this_o from_o §_o 75._o concern_v some_o protestant_n restrain_v schism_n to_o a_o departure_n in_o the_o essential_o of_o religion_n §_o 61_o but_o the_o same_o person_n though_o they_o contract_v schism_n thus_o in_o the_o case_n of_o inferior_n yet_o in_o another_o way_n they_o enlarge_v it_o where_o catholic_n do_v not_o admit_v it_o namely_o to_o the_o church_n governor_n themselves_o affirm_v 1_o st_o '_o that_o they_o even_o in_o the_o supreme_a body_n of_o they_o lawful_a general_n council_n may_v err_v in_o non-fundamentalls_a and_o impose_v unjust_a condition_n of_o their_o communion_n follow_v with_o a_o excommunication_n of_o non-conformists'_a and_o 2_o lie_n that_o so_o often_o as_o they_o do_v so_o they_o in_o give_v such_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n incur_v the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n 133.142_o schism_n ap._n laud_n p._n 133.142_o and_o thereby_o do_v become_v divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n from_o which_o they_o will_v divide_v other_o 359._o other_o stillingfleet_n p._n 356._o etc._n etc._n 359._o for_o instance_n shall_v a_o general_n council_n consist_v both_o of_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a church_n and_o general_o accept_v §_o 62_o before_o the_o time_n of_o luther_n require_v assent_n to_o a_o substantial_a conversion_n in_o the_o eucharist_n to_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o st._n invocation_n to_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n &c._n &c._n as_o they_o must_v grant_v that_o if_o both_o these_o church_n do_v not_o yet_o possible_o they_o may_v because_o protestant_n say_v 1_o that_o the_o whole_a may_v err_v in_o nonfundamentals_a and_o 2_o that_o these_o point_n be_v such_o they_o affirm_v that_o thus_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n will_v become_v schismatical_a and_o no_o long_a member_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n mr._n stillingfleet_v word_n to_o this_o purpose_n be_v these_o 356._o these_o p._n 356._o '_o suppose_v any_o church_n though_o pretend_v to_o be_v never_o so_o catholic_n do_v restrain_v her_o communion_n within_o such_o narrow_a and_o unjust_a bound_n that_o she_o declare_v such_o excommunicate_a who_o do_v not_o approve_v all_o such_o error_n in_o doctrine_n and_o corruption_n in_o practice_n which_o the_o communion_n of_o such_o a_o church_n may_v be_v liable_a to_o i._n e._n when_o the_o error_n and_o corruption_n be_v such_o as_o be_v dangerous_a to_o salvation_n that_o church_n become_v thereby_o divide_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o all_o such_o who_o disowne_n such_o a_o unjust_a enclosure_n do_v not_o so_o much_o divide_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n so_o enclose_v as_o return_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o primitive_a and_o universal_a church_n and_o p._n 359._o he_o say_v whatever_o church_n make_v such_o extrinsecall_n oppose_a so_o essential_a thing_n the_o necessary_a condition_n of_o communion_n so_o as_o to_o cast_v man_n out-of_a the_o church_n who_o yield_v not_o to_o they_o thereby_o divide_v itself_o from_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o separation_n from_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v schism_n that_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n on_o those_o term_n only_o return_v they_o to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o p._n 617._o he_o say_v that_o he_o can_v possible_o discern_v any_o difference_n between_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o catholic_n concern_v the_o donatist_n which_o catholic_n pronounce_v they_o schismatic_n and_o no_o member_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_n of_o the_o protestant_n concern_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n thus_o he_o but_o here_o 1_o st_z from_o this_o assertion_n that_o that_o church_n which_o require_v unjust_a thing_n as_o condition_n of_o her_o communion_n do_v hereupon_o divide_v herself_o and_o so_o become_v divide_v from_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_o again_o that_o those_o be_v unjust_a condition_n of_o communion_n which_o protestant_n have_v style_v to_o be_v so_o it_o follow_v 1_o st_o that_o since_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la the_o present_a eastern_a and_o greek_n as_o well_o as_o western_a and_o roman-churche_n do_v require_v as_o condition_n of_o their_o communion_n and_o even_o in_o their_o public_a liturgy_n several_a thing_n which_o protestant_n call_v unjust_a therefore_o the_o eastern_a as_o well_o as_o western_a according_a to_o their_o thesis_fw-la must_v stand_v divide_v from_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_o therefore_o now_o only_o the_o reform_a be_v that_o church_n catholic_n the_o perpetual_a existence_n of_o which_o
&_o manentibus_fw-la in_o hunc_fw-la diem_fw-la vestigiis_fw-la semper_fw-la &_o ubique_fw-la &_o perseveranter_fw-la essent_fw-la tradita_fw-la videbam_fw-la ea_fw-la manere_fw-la in_o illâ_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la quae_fw-la romanae_fw-la connectitur_fw-la last_o we_o find_v it_o a_o body_n general_o profess_v against_o any_o reformation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o former_a church-catholick_n of_o any_o age_n whatsoever_o and_o claim_v no_o privilege_n of_o infallibility_n to_o itself_o for_o the_o present_a which_o it_o allow_v not_o also_o to_o the_o church_n in_o all_o former_a time_n this_o be_v the_o general_a character_n of_o one_o combination_n of_o the_o church_n in_o present_a be_v the_o other_o present_a combination_n of_o church_n in_o the_o western_a world_n church_n world_n 76._o the_o face_n of_o the_o present_a protestant_a church_n we_o find_v to_o be_v a_o body_n of_o much_o different_a constitution_n and_o complexion_n *_o much_o of_o its_o doctrine_n public_a service_n and_o discipline_n confess_v vary_v from_o the_o time_n immediate_o precede_v it_o consist_v of_o those_o who_o acknowledge_v themselves_o or_o their_o ancestor_n once_o member_n of_o the_o former_a and_o that_o have_v as_o they_o say_v upon_o a_o unjust_a submission_n require_v of_o they_o yet_o this_o no_o more_o than_o their_o forefather_n pay_v depart_v from_o it_o *_o this_o new_a church_n only_o one_o person_n at_o the_o first_o afterward_o grow_v to_o a_o number_n and_o protect_v against_o the_o spiritual_a by_o a_o secular_a power_n and_o so_o we_o find_v it_o subsist_v and_o act_v at_o this_o day_n under_o many_o several_a secular_a head_n independent_a of_o one_o another_o without_o who_o consent_n and_o approbation_n first_o obtain_v what_o if_o such_o head_n shall_v be_v a_o heretic_n it_o stand_v oblige_v not_o at_o any_o time_n to_o make_v or_o promulgate_v and_o enforce_v upon_o its_o subject_n any_o definition_n or_o decree_n what_o ever_o in_o spiritual_a matter_n 19_o matter_n see_v 25._o hent_n 8._o c._n 19_o as_o to_o its_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n we_o find_v it_o take_v away_o the_o high_a subordination_n therein_o that_o be_v former_o and_o affirm_v a_o independent_a coordination_n as_o to_o incur_v guilt_n of_o schism_n some_o of_o all_o primate_fw-la other_o of_o all_o bishop_n very_o prejudical_a to_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n we_o find_v it_o stand_v also_o disunite_v from_o st._n peter_n chair_n yet_o this_o a_o much_o small_a body_n still_o than_o that_o which_o be_v join_v thereto_o and_o therefore_o in_o a_o general_n council_n suppose_v all_o the_o member_n thereof_o to_o continue_v in_o and_o to_o deliver_v there_o their_o present_a judgement_n touch_v point_n in_o dispute_n such_o as_o must_v needs_o be_v out_o vote_v by_o the_o other_o and_o hence_o by_o the_o law_n of_o council_n in_o duty_n oblige_v to_o submit_v and_o conform_v to_o it_o neither_o seem_v there_o any_o relief_n to_o this_o party_n to_o be_v expect_v from_o the_o accession_n to_o their_o side_n of_o any_o vote_n from_o the_o church_n more_o remote_a i_o mean_v the_o greek_a or_o other_o eastern_a church_n if_o we_o will_v suppose_v these_o also_o to_o persist_v in_o their_o present_a judgement_n who_o doctrine_n in_o the_o chief_a controversy_n be_v show_v etc._n show_v §._o 158._o etc._n etc._n to_o conspire_v yet_o without_o any_o late_a confederacy_n with_o that_o of_o this_o great_a body_n which_o these_o reform_a church_n have_v desert_v §_o 77_o we_o find_v also_o this_o new_a combination_n of_o church_n in_o stead_n of_o pretend_v to_o assume_v to_o itself_o whatsoever_o the_o facto_fw-la it_o do_v of_o which_o see_v more_o in_o the_o follow_a chap._n §_o 83._o etc._n etc._n in_o its_o synod_n the_o same_o authority_n in_o state_v matter_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o ancient_a council_n have_v use_v 1._o zealous_o contend_v that_o council_n be_v fallible_a in_o their_o determination_n for_o so_o it_o support_v the_o privilege_n of_o use_v its_o own_o judgement_n against_o superior_a synod_n 2._o and_o according_o teach_v its_o subject_n that_o itself_o also_o be_v fallible_a in_o what_o it_o propose_v 3_o and_o engage_v they_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v deceive_v by_o its_o authority_n upon_o trial_n of_o its_o doctrine_n and_o search_v of_o the_o truth_n and_o examine_v with_o the_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n every_o one_o for_o himself_o and_o then_o rely_v final_o on_o that_o sentence_n which_o their_o own_o reason_n give_v 4._o allow_v also_o their_o dissent_n to_o what_o it_o teach_v till_o it_o prove_v to_o they_o its_o doctrine_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n or_o at_o least_o when_o ever_o they_o be_v persuade_v that_o themselves_o from_o thence_o can_v evidence_n the_o contrary_a therefore_o it_o be_v also_o more_o spare_v or_o pretend_v to_o be_v so_o of_o which_o see_v more_o below_o §_o 85._o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o article_n of_o its_o faith_n and_o religion_n especial_o positive_a many_o of_o its_o divine_n hold_v a_o union_n of_o faith_n requisite_a only_o in_o some_o necessary_n and_o then_o contract_a necessary_n again_o in_o a_o narrow_a compass_n than_o the_o creed_n and_o because_o it_o allow_v of_o no_o judge_n sufficient_a to_o clear_v what_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v in_o controversy_n 38._o controversy_n see_v 2._o disc_n §._o 38._o therefore_o hold_v most_o controversy_n in_o religion_n not_o necessary_a at_o all_o to_o be_v determine_v and_o much_o recommend_v a_o union_n of_o charity_n there_o where_o can_v be_v have_v a_o union_n of_o belief_n we_o find_v they_o also_o restrain_v heresy_n to_o point_n fundamental_a and_o then_o leave_v fundamental_o uncertain_a and_o vary_v as_o to_o several_a person_n few_o point_v fundamental_a to_o some_o more_o to_o other_o and_o this_o no_o way_n knowable_a by_o the_o church_n again_o make_v schism_n only_o such_o a_o departure_n from_o the_o church_n as_o be_v causeless_a and_o then_o this_o thing_n when_o causeless_a to_o be_v judge_v for_o any_o thing_n that_o appear_v by_o those_o who_o depart_v by_o such_o notion_n leave_v heretic_n and_o schismatic_n undiscernible_a by_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o unseparable_a from_o it_o and_o therefore_o many_o seem_a to_o understand_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_n apostolic_a church_n in_o the_o creed_n to_o signify_v nothing_o else_o than_o the_o total_a complex_fw-la of_o all_o church_n whatever_o profess_v christianity_n unless_o those_o person_n be_v shut_v out_o who_o by_o impose_v some_o restraint_n of_o opinion_n for_o enjoy_v their_o communion_n be_v say_v to_o give_v just_a cause_n of_o a_o separation_n according_o we_o find_v this_o body_n spread_v its_o lap_n wide_o to_o several_a sect_n by_o which_o it_o acquire_v the_o more_o considerable_a magnitude_n and_o receive_v or_o tolerate_v in_o its_o communion_n many_o opposite_a party_n of_o very_a different_a principle_n and_o hence_o as_o it_o grow_v elder_a so_o daily_o branch_a more_o and_o more_o into_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n and_o multiply_v into_o more_o and_o more_o subdivision_n of_o sect_n be_v destitute_a of_o any_o cure_n thereof_o both_o by_o its_o necessary_a indulgement_n of_o that_o call_v christian_a liberty_n and_o allowance_n of_o private_a judgement_n and_o also_o by_o the_o absolute_a independency_n one_o on_o another_o of_o so_o many_o several_a supreme_a governor_n both_o the_o secular_a and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a who_o model_n and_o order_n diverse_o the_o several_a part_n thereof_o as_o the_o other_o church_n in_o her_o grow_a elder_n grow_v more_o and_o more_o particular_a in_o her_o faith_n and_o with_o new_a definition_n and_o canon_n fence_v it_o round_o about_o according_a as_o new_a error_n will_v break_v in_o upon_o it_o further_o we_o find_v several_a among_o its_o leader_n much_o offend_v 1._o §._o 78._o n._n 1._o that_o church-tradition_n shall_v be_v bring_v in_o together_o with_o scripture_n as_o a_o authentic_a witness_n or_o arbitrator_n in_o try_v controversy_n see_v the_o protestant_n condition_n propose_v to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 366_o trent_n soave_fw-it p._n 642-344_a 366_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n may_v be_v judge_n in_o the_o council_n and_o all_o humane_a authority_n exclude_v or_o admit_v with_o a_o condition_n fundantes_n see_v in_o s._n scripture_n take_v great_a pain_n to_o *_o discover_v the_o error_n of_o the_o father_n and_o their_o contradict_v of_o one_o another_o see_v daille_n uray_fw-fr usage_n de_fw-fr peres_n and_o *_o to_n show_v several_a of_o the_o work_v impute_v to_o they_o and_o admit_v by_o r._n catholic_n supposititious_a and_o forge_v see_v cook_n and_o perkins_n and_o rivet_n censure_n take_v no_o less_o pain_n to_o show_v the_o non_fw-fr necessity_n of_o council_n in_o general_n to_o number_v the_o many_o difficulty_n how_o to_o be_v assure_v which_o of_o they_o be_v legal_a and_o oblige_a what_o their_o decree_n and_o what_o the_o sense_n of_o they_o to_o discover_v the_o flaw_n &_o deficiency_n in_o
in_o that_o most_o reverend_a council_n of_o nice_a upon_o pretence_n that_o you_o have_v not_o have_v a_o convince_a proposal_n that_o this_o definition_n be_v therein_o make_v according_a to_o god_n word_n or_o the_o scripture_n yet_o how_o will_v you_o clear_v yourself_o or_o your_o socinian_n congregation_n of_o schism_n avoidable_o upon_o no_o plea_n of_o adherence_n to_o scripture_n if_o it_o shall_v appear_v that_o you_o have_v for_o this_o opinion_n desert_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n out_o of_o which_o church_n be_v no_o salvation_n soc._n 75._o soc._n dr._n potter_n p._n 75._o i_o grant_v there_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v any_o just_a cause_n to_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n no_o more_o than_o from_o christ_n himself_n therefore_o i_o utter_o deny_v that_o our_o church_n have_v make_v any_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n catholic_n at_o all_o and_o this_o for_o many_o reason_n for_o 1_o 274._o 1_o chillingw_n p._n 274._o we_o have_v not_o forsake_v the_o whole_a church_n or_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o it_o but_o only_o that_o part_n of_o it_o which_o be_v corrupt_v and_o still_o will_v be_v so_o and_o have_v not_o forsake_v but_o only_o reform_v another_o part_n of_o it_o which_o part_n we_o ourselves_o be_v and_o i_o suppose_v you_o will_v not_o go_v about_o to_o persuade_v we_o that_o we_o have_v forsake_v ourselves_o or_o our_o own_o communion_n and_o if_o you_o urge_v that_o we_o join_v ourselves_o to_o no_o other_o part_n therefore_o we_o separate_v from_o the_o whole_a i_o say_v it_o follow_v not_o in_o as_o much_o as_o ourselves_o be_v a_o part_n of_o it_o and_o still_o continue_v so_o and_o therefore_o can_v no_o more_o separate_v from_o the_o whole_a than_o from_o ourselves_o prot._n so_o then_o it_o seem_v we_o need_v fear_v no_o schism_n from_o the_o church_n catholic_n tilla_fw-la part_n can_v divide_v from_o itself_o which_o can_v never_o be_v §_o 29_o soc._n next_o as_o for_o our_o separate_n from_o all_o other_o particular_a church_n the_o ground_n of_o our_o separation_n be_v a_o error_n which_o have_v creep_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o these_o church_n and_o which_o be_v unjust_o impose_v upon_o we_o in_o order_n to_o this_o communion_n we_o conceive_v in_o this_o case_n if_o any_o they_o not_o we_o be_v the_o schismatic_n for_o as_o the_o arch._n bp._n 142._o bp._n lawd_n p._n 142._o the_o schism_n be_v they_o who_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o be_v and_o he_o make_v the_o separation_n who_o give_v the_o first_o just_a cause_n of_o it_o not_o he_o that_o make_v a_o actual_a separation_n upon_o a_o just_a cause_n precede_v §_o 30_o again_n though_o we_o have_v make_v a_o actual_a separation_n from_o they_o as_o to_o the_o not-conforming_a to_o or_o also_o as_o to_o the_o reform_v of_o a_o error_n yet_o 1_o as_o to_o charity_n we_o do_v still_o retain_v with_o the_o same_o church_n our_o former_a communion_n 32._o communion_n dr._n ferne_n division_n of_o church_n p._n 105._o and_o 31_o 32._o not_o divide_v from_o they_o through_o the_o breach_n of_o charity_n or_o condemn_v all_o other_o church_n as_o no_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o draw_v the_o communion_n whole_o to_o ourselves_o as_o do_v those_o famous_a schismatic_n the_o donatist_n §_o 31_o next_o as_o to_o matter_n of_o faith_n we_o hold_v that_o all_o separation_n from_o all_o particular_a church_n in_o such_o a_o thing_n wherein_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v not_o consist_v be_v no_o separation_n from_o the_o whole_a church_n nor_o any_o more_o than_o our_o suspension_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o particular_a church_n till_o such_o their_o error_n be_v reform_v for_o as_o mr._n stillingf_n 331._o stillingf_n p._n 331._o there_o can_v be_v no_o separation_n from_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o in_o such_o thing_n wherein_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n lie_v who_o be_v therefore_o separate_v from_o any_o particular_a church_n as_o to_o thing_n not_o concern_v their_o be_v be_v only_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n and_o not_o the_o catholic_n now_o that_o for_o which_o we_o have_v separate_v from_o other_o church_n we_o conceive_v not_o such_o as_o be_v essential_a or_o concern_v the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n so_o that_o without_o it_o we_o or_o they_o can_v still_o retain_v the_o essence_n thereof_o we_o declare_v also_o our_o readiness_n to_o join_v with_o they_o again_o if_o this_o error_n be_v correct_v or_o at_o least_o not_o impose_v and_o ib._n and_o still_v ib._n as_o mr._n stillingf_n faith_n where_o there_o be_v this_o readiness_n of_o communion_n there_o be_v no_o absolute_a separation_n from_o the_o church_n as_o such_o but_o only_o suspend_v communion_n till_o such_o abuse_n be_v reform_v or_o not_o press_v upon_o we_o and_o as_o bp._n bramhall_n 9_o bramhall_n vindic._n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n 9_o when_o one_o part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n separate_v itself_o from_o another_o part_n not_o absolute_o or_o in_o essential_o but_o respective_o in_o abuse_n and_o innovation_n not_o as_o it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o only_o so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v corrupt_v and_o degenerate_v whether_o in_o doctrine_n or_o manner_n it_o do_v still_o retain_v a_o communion_n not_o only_o with_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o with_o all_o the_o orthodox_n member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o even_o with_o that_o corrupt_a church_n from_o which_o it_o be_v separate_v except_o only_o in_o such_o corruption_n §_o 32_o prot._n save_v better_a judgement_n methinks_v a_o separation_n if_o causeless_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o all_o other_o church_n or_o from_o those_o who_o be_v our_o superior_n in_o a_o lesser_a matter_n than_o such_o a_o fundamental_a or_o essential_a point_n of_o christianity_n as_o destroy_v the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n shall_v be_v schism_n and_o the_o small_a the_o point_n for_o which_o we_o separate_v the_o great_a the_o guilt_n of_o our_o separation_n be_v not_o the_o donatists_n schismatic_n in_o reject_v the_o catholic_n communion_n require_v their_o conformity_n in_o such_o a_o point_n in_o which_o st._n cyprian_n error_n before_o the_o church_n define_v thereof_o be_v very_o excusable_a and_o the_o african_a congregation_n in_o his_o time_n not_o un-churched_n thereby_o soc._n 76._o soc._n dr._n potter_n p._n 76._o but_o the_o donatist_n do_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n the_o church_n from_o which_o they_o separate_v which_o be_v the_o property_n of_o schismatic_n and_o 106._o and_o stillingf_n p._n 359._o division_n of_o church_n p._n 106._o they_o be_v just_o charge_v with_o schism_n because_o they_o confine_v the_o catholic_n church_n within_o their_o own_o bound_n but_o as_o dr._n ferne_n say_v †_o have_v the_o donatist_n only_o use_v their_o liberty_n and_o judgement_n in_o that_o practice_n of_o rebaptise_v heretic_n leave_v other_o church_n to_o their_o liberty_n and_o though_o think_v they_o in_o a_o error_n for_o admit_v heretic_n without_o baptise_v they_o yet_o willing_a to_o have_v communion_n with_o they_o as_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n save_v the_o practice_n wherein_o they_o differ_v then_o have_v they_o not_o be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n in_o that_o which_o i_o hold_v i_o only_o follow_v my_o conscience_n condemn_v not_o the_o church_n hold_v otherwise_o on_o the_o other_o side_n 278._o side_n chillingw_n p._n 278._o christ_n have_v forbid_v i_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o profess_v what_o i_o believe_v not_o be_v it_o small_a or_o great_a and_o consequent_o under_o the_o same_o penalty_n have_v oblige_v i_o to_o leave_v that_o communion_n in_o which_o i_o can_v remain_v wothout_n the_o hypocritical_a profession_n of_o such_o a_o thing_n which_o i_o be_o convince_v to_o be_v eroneous_a 279._o eroneous_a ib._n 279._o at_o least_o this_o i_o know_v that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o i_o have_v choose_v to_o i_o seem_v true_a and_o the_o contrary_a which_o i_o have_v forsake_v seem_v false_a and_o therefore_o without_o remorse_n of_o conscience_n i_o may_v profess_v that_o but_o this_o i_o can_v and_o a_o separation_n for_o preserve_v my_o conscience_n i_o hope_v will_v never_o be_v judge_v causeless_o §_o 33_o prot._n at_o this_o rate_n none_o will_v be_v a_o schismatic_a but_o he_o who_o know_v he_o err_v i_o e._n not_o who_o hold_v but_o only_o who_o profess_v a_o error_n or_o who_o know_v that_o the_o point_n for_o the_o nonconformity_n to_o which_o require_v of_o he_o he_o desert_n the_o church_n be_v a_o truth_n and_o the_o contrary_a which_o he_o maintain_v a_o error_n but_o dr._n hammond_n 25._o hammond_n of_o schism_n p._n 23._o 24._o 25._o tell_v you_o that_o he_o that_o do_v communinate_a with_o those_o i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v
at_o the_o come_n of_o luther_n §_o 36._o 7._o they_o affirm_v that_o though_o the_o church_n catholic_n can_v yet_o general_a council_n such_o as_o be_v not_o universal_o accept_v by_o the_o church_n diffusive_a may_v err_v in_o absolute_a necessary_n to_o salvation_n and_o that_o the_o council_n also_o universal_o accept_v may_v err_v in_o nonfundamentals_a or_o non-necessaries_a §_o 34._o 8._o yet_o that_o they_o allow_v all_o such_o council_n as_o be_v general_o accept_v by_o the_o church_n diffusive_a to_o be_v either_o lawful_o general_n or_o equivalent_a thereto_o and_o also_o to_o be_v infallible_a in_o necessary_n §_o 35._o where_o that_o necessary_n in_o their_o sense_n restrain_v only_o to_o a_o very_a few_o point_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o universal_a acceptation_n extend_v to_o all_o sect_n of_o christian_n do_v free_a they_o from_o any_o obligation_n to_o all_o or_o most_o council_n former_o hold_v in_o the_o church_n §_o 36._o 9_o and_o that_o they_o grant_v a_o obedience_n due_a to_o the_o definition_n and_o decree_n of_o such_o counsel_n from_o all_o inferior_a person_n or_o church_n §_o 38._o 10._o but_o this_o obedience_n not_o necessary_o that_o of_o assent_n to_o their_o decree_n unless_o such_o decree_n be_v in_o and_o know_v to_o be_v in_o necessary_n but_o only_a of_o silence_n and_o non-publick_a contradiction_n §_o 39_o where_o concern_v the_o quality_n of_o the_o obedience_n that_o be_v yield_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o first_o general_n council_n §_o 40._o 11._o nor_o this_o silence_n or_o noncontradiction_n general_o due_a to_o all_o the_o decree_n of_o such_o council_n but_o only_o to_o such_o decree_n wherein_o the_o error_n of_o the_o council_n be_v not_o manifest_a or_o intolerable_a §_o 43._o nor_o this_o breach_n of_o silence_n or_o contradiction_n of_o such_o decree_n allow_v only_o so_o far_o as_o to_o make_v complaint_n to_o superior_n who_o not_o allow_v their_o complaint_n they_o be_v to_o acquiesce_v but_o allow_v so_o far_o as_o that_o they_o may_v proceed_v upon_o the_o superior_n by_o them-conceived_n neglect_v of_o a_o redress_n to_o a_o reformation_n §_o 44._o 12._o and_o the_o judgement_n when_o such_o error_n be_v manifest_a and_o intolerable_a and_o to_o be_v reform_v leave_v to_o every_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n for_o themselves_o §_o 47._o chap._n 5._o 13._o according_o they_o declare_v and_o confine_v heresy_n to_o be_v a_o error_n obstinate_o maintain_v not_o against_o some_o church-definition_n but_o some_o fundamental_a article_n of_o the_o faith_n without_o allow_v any_o certain_a judge_n what_o or_o how_o many_o article_n be_v fundamental_a and_o so_o what_o be_v heresy_n §_o 51._o 14._o concern_v schism_n one_a in_o respect_n of_o inferior_n they_o declare_v it_o to_o be_v not_o any_o separation_n whatever_o but_o a_o separation_n causeless_a §_o 55._o or_o also_o as_o some_o more_o straiten_v it_o a_o separation_n in_o essential_o §_o 57_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o other_o church_n or_o of_o the_o church_n catholic_n here_o again_o without_o leave_v we_o any_o certain_a judge_n what_o point_n be_v essential_o or_o when_o the_o separation_n causeless_a and_o consequent_o when_o schism_n unless_o perhaps_o the_o separatist_n be_v this_o judge_n 2._o again_o in_o respect_n of_o superior_n they_o enlarge_v schism_n and_o declare_v they_o also_o guilty_a of_o it_o so_o often_o as_o by_o require_v unjust_a condition_n of_o their_o communion_n from_o inferior_n they_o give_v the_o cause_n of_o separation_n whereby_o the_o chief_a and_o govern_v body_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n at_o luther_n appearance_n seem_v by_o they_o charge_v with_o schism_n and_o that_o from_o the_o catholic_n church_n §_o 61._o whether_o the_o ecclesiastical_a superior_n when_o depart_v from_o no_o other_o their_o superior_n can_v become_v in_o respect_n of_o their_o subject_n guilty_a of_o schism_n §_o 63._o n._n 1._o chap._n 6._o a_o reflection_n on_o the_o former_a different_a thesis_n of_o these_o two_o party_n concern_v church-authority_n and_o the_o obedience_n due_a thereto_o §_o 64._o and_o a_o review_n of_o the_o two_o present_a opposite_a church_n which_o of_o they_o most_o resemble_v the_o ancient_a catholic_n church_n §_o 67._o the_o face_n *_o of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n church_n ib._n *_o of_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n §_o 72._o *_o of_o the_o present_a protestant_a church_n §_o 76._o a_o enquiry_n chap._n 7._o whether_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v not_o require_v obedience_n of_o assent_n or_o belief_n to_o her_o article_n of_o religion_n several_a canon_n in_o her_o synond_n seem_v to_o require_v it_o §_o 83._o n._n 1_o the_o complaint_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o conc_fw-fr it_o §_o 83._o n._n 4._o the_o doctrine_n of_o her_o divine_n conc_fw-fr it_o §_o 84._o n._n 1._o where_o conc._n the_o just_a importance_n of_o negative_a article_n §_o 84._o n._n 1._o and_o 85._o n._n 2._o and_o conc._n conditional_a assent_n §_o 84._o n._n 4._o and_o 85._o n._n 10._o that_o to_o some_o of_o the_o 39_o article_n assent_n be_v due_a and_o aught_o to_o be_v require_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o her_o subject_n §_o 85._o n._n 1._o that_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v not_o require_v assent_n to_o all_o the_o canon_n of_o her_o council_n as_o to_o point_n fundamental_a i._n e._n of_o any_o of_o which_o a_o christian_a nescient_fw-la can_v be_v save_v §_o 85._o n._n 4._o that_o the_o require_v of_o obedience_n either_o of_o assent_n or_o noncontradiction_n by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o all_o the_o 39_o article_n seem_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o the_o protestant_a principle_n §_o 85._o n._n 11._o chap._n 8._o solution_n of_o several_a protestant_a question_n concern_v the_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a guide_n or_o judge_n of_o controversy_n §_o 86._o 1._o q._n from_o what_o we_o can_v be_v assure_v that_o council_n be_v infallible_a since_o neither_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n the_o sense_n whereof_o be_v dispute_v nor_o the_o decree_n of_o any_o council_n who_o err_a be_v the_o thing_n question_v can_v give_v such_o assurance_n ib._n 2._o q._n whence_o general_n council_n have_v their_o infallibility_n such_o promise_n if_o make_v be_v make_v only_o to_o the_o church_n diffusive_a and_o not_o delegable_a by_o this_o church_n to_o other_o or_o if_o so_o no_o such_o delegation_n from_o the_o universal_a church_n appear_v before_o hand_n to_o have_v be_v make_v to_o all_o or_o any_o general_n council_n §_o 91._o 3._o q._n how_o the_o infallibility_n of_o general_n council_n be_v necessary_a or_o serviceable_a to_o the_o church_n without_o which_o council_n the_o church_n subsist_v for_o several_a age_n most_o orthodox_n §_o 98._o 4._o q._n how_o lawful_a general_n council_n which_o experience_n have_v show_v to_o have_v contradict_v one_o another_o can_v be_v all_o infallible_a §_o 100_o 5._o q._n lawful_a general_n council_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v liable_a to_o error_n in_o some_o thing_n how_o christian_n can_v be_v assure_v concern_v any_o particular_a point_n that_o these_o council_n do_v not_o err_v §_o 101._o 6._o q._n whilst_o such_o council_n be_v suppose_v infallible_a how_o if_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o can_v any_o error_n of_o they_o be_v rectify_v §_o 102._o 7._o q._n whether_o such_o council_n only_o when_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o also_o unconfirmed_a by_o he_o be_v infallible_a §_o 104._o 8._o q._n how_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n can_v any_o way_n concur_v to_o such_o council_n non-erring_a since_o if_o it_o err_v it_o do_v so_o still_o though_o he_o approve_v it_o if_o orthodox_n it_o be_v so_o still_o he_o not_o approve_v it_o §_o 105._o 9_o q._n in_o which_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o council_n this_o infallibility_n lie_v if_o in_o one_o of_o they_o the_o other_o needless_a if_o in_o both_o then_o either_o of_o they_o sufficient_a such_o quality_n be_v where_o they_o be_v indivisible_a and_o without_o integral_a part_n §_o 106._o chap._n 9_o 10._o q._n if_o general_a council_n infallible_a whether_o they_o be_v so_o in_o their_o conclusion_n only_o which_o will_v infer_v enthusiasm_n or_o new_a revelation_n or_o also_o in_o their_o premise_n and_o proof_n upon_o which_o assent_n will_v be_v due_a also_o to_o all_o their_o argument_n §_o 107._o 11._o q._n why_o be_v infallible_a in_o their_o conclusion_n or_o definition_n they_o do_v not_o end_v all_o controversy_n but_o leave_v so_o many_o unresolved_a §_o 108._o 12._o q._n how_o such_o infallibility_n of_o they_o differ_v from_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o of_o their_o decree_n from_o that_o of_o scripture_n §_o 109._o 13._o q._n how_o many_o person_n or_o guide_v all_o fallible_a can_v make_v one_o infallible_a §_o 112._o 14._o q._n suppose_v all_o lawful_a general_n council_n
be_v just_a that_o either_o of_o these_o shall_v be_v the_o judge_n therefore_o that_o the_o divine_n on_o one_o part_n and_o on_o the_o other_o argue_v for_o their_o own_o tenant_n there_o may_v be_v judge_n i._n e._n laic_n indifferent_o choose_v on_o both_o side_n that_o be_v in_o a_o equal_a number_n to_o take_v knowledge_n of_o the_o controversy_n and_o see_v mr._n stillingfleet_n motion_v some_o such_o thing_n p._n 479._o and_n this_v indeed_o be_v the_o only_a way_n they_o have_v in_o refer_v themselves_o to_o judgement_n not_o to_o be_v cast_v if_o the_o judge_n of_o their_o own_o side_n at_o least_o will_v be_v true_a to_o they_o but_o to_o let_v these_o thing_n pass_v as_o to_o a_o due_a proportion_n of_o national_a vote_n this_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v deficient_a therein_o whilst_o those_o nation_n who_o by_o their_o own_o if_o by_o any_o one_o fault_n have_v few_o vote_n in_o the_o council_n in_o pass_v the_o decree_n yet_o be_v as_o plenary_a and_o numerous_a as_o the_o rest_n in_o the_o acceptation_n of_o they_o after_o it_o and_o be_v now_o anew_o these_o thing_n put_v to_o a_o equal_a vote_n of_o the_o western_a nation_n i_o see_v not_o from_o what_o the_o protestant_n may_v reasonable_o expect_v suppose_v the_o great_a liberty_n in_o these_o vote_n that_o be_v possible_a a_o issue_n diverse_a from_o the_o former_a for_o have_v they_o any_o new_a thing_n to_o propose_v in_o their_o oration_n and_o speech_n before_o such_o a_o meeting_n that_o they_o have_v not_o already_o say_v in_o their_o write_n and_o notwithstanding_o be_v not_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o occidental_a clergy_n and_o the_o learned_a that_o peruse_v they_o of_o a_o different_a judgement_n and_o why_o shall_v not_o the_o other_o have_v as_o great_a presumption_n upon_o a_o equal_a hear_n to_o pcevail_v for_o reduce_v some_o of_o the_o protestant_a party_n by_o scripture_n explicate_v by_o apostolical_a tradition_n council_n and_o father_n as_o the_o protestant_n of_o gain_v some_o of_o the_o other_o by_o scripture_n alone_o or_o if_o any_o will_v say_v that_o ancient_a tradition_n council_n or_o father_n be_v on_o the_o protestant_a side_n how_o come_v this_o to_o be_v one_o of_o their_o article_n propose_v to_o the_o council_n that_o all_o humane_a authority_n be_v exclude_v the_o holy_a scripture_n may_v be_v judge_n in_o the_o council_n and_o the_o trent_n safe-conauct_a run_v thus_o quod_fw-la causae_fw-la controversae_fw-la secundum_fw-la sanctam_fw-la scripturam_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la traditiones_fw-la probata_fw-la concilia_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la authoritates_fw-la catholicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la consensum_fw-la tractentur_fw-la why_o desire_v they_o a_o free_a safe_a conduct_n after_o the_o form_n of_o that_o of_o basil_n to_o the_o bohemian_o which_o if_o it_o have_v be_v grant_v say_v soave_fw-it 344._o soave_fw-it p._n 344._o they_o have_v obtain_v one_o great_a point_n that_o be_v that_o the_o controversy_n shall_v be_v decide_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n this_o from_o §_o 36._o n._n 1._o i_o have_v say_v occasional_o to_o bishop_n bramhal_n so_o frequent_a free_a offer_n of_o submission_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o present_a catholic_n church_n or_o of_o free_a general_n or_o also_o occidental_a council_n §_o 37_o next_o come_v we_o to_o archbishop_n lawd_n he_o §_o 31._o p._n 318._o affirm_v that_o lawd_n of_o archbish_n lawd_n the_o visible_a church_n have_v in_o all_o age_n teach_v that_o unchanged_a faith_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o point_v fundamental_a doctor_n white_a say_v he_o have_v reason_n to_o say_v this_o and_o §_o 21._o p._n 140._o it_o be_v not_o possible_a the_o catholic_n church_n i._n e._n of_o any_o one_o age_n shall_v teach_v he_o speak_v therefore_o of_o the_o governor_n of_o it_o in_o such_o age_n against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o thing_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o §_o 25._o n._n 4._o if_o we_o speak_v of_o plain_a and_o easy_a scripture_n the_o whole_a church_n can_v at_o any_o time_n be_v without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o if_o a._n c._n mean_v no_o more_o than_o that_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n of_o christ_n can_v universal_o err_v in_o any_o one_o point_n of_o faith_n simple_o necessary_a to_o all_o man_n salvation_n he_o fight_v against_o no_o adversary_n that_o i_o know_v but_o his_o own_o fiction_n for_o the_o most_o learned_a protestant_n grant_v it_o where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n as_o teach_v such_o point_n as_o appeareth_z by_o the_o context_n ibid._n p._n 139._o because_o the_o whole_a church_n can_v universal_o err_v in_o absolute_o fundamental_a doctrine_n therefore_o it_o be_v true_a also_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o just_a cause_n of_o make_v a_o schism_n from_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o she_o may_v err_v indeed_o in_o superstruction_n and_o deduction_n and_o other_o by-and_a unnecessary_a truth_n from_o her_o curiosity_n or_o other_o weakness_n but_o if_o she_o can_v err_v either_o by_o fall_v away_o from_o the_o foundation_n i._n e._n by_o infidelity_n or_o by_o heretical_a error_n in_o it_o she_o can_v be_v no_o long_o holy_a for_o no_o assembly_n of_o heretic_n can_v be_v holy_a and_o so_o that_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n be_v go_v now_o this_o holiness_n say_v he_o error_n of_o a_o mean_a allay_n take_v not_o away_o from_o the_o church_n likewise_o §_o 33._o n._n 4._o p._n 256._o the_o same_o archbishop_n say_v yet_o more_o clear_o that_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n militant_a have_v a_o absolute_a infallibility_n in_o the_o prime_a foundation_n of_o faith_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n if_o any_o thing_n sway_n and_o wrench_v the_o general_n council_n he_o must_v mean_v here_o in_o non-necessaries_a &_o such_o council_n as_o be_v not_o universal_o accept_v for_o a_o general_n council_n universal_o accept_v by_o the_o church_n catholic_n be_v unerrable_a in_o necessary_n because_o the_o church_n catholic_n he_o say_v be_v so_o upon_o evidence_n find_v in_o express_a scripture_n or_o demonstration_n of_o this_o miscarriage_n have_v power_n to_o represent_v herself_o in_o another_o body_n or_o general_n council_n and_o to_o take_v order_n for_o what_o be_v amiss_o either_o practise_v or_o conclude_v in_o the_o former_a and_o to_o define_v against_o it_o p._n 257._o and_o afterward_o p._n 258._o that_o thus_o though_o the_o mother-church_n provincial_a or_o national_a may_v err_v yet_o if_o the_o grandmother_n the_o whole_a universal_a church_n he_o mean_v in_o a_o general_a council_n universal_o accept_a can_v err_v in_o these_o necessary_a thing_n all_o remain_v safe_a and_o all_o occasion_n of_o disobedience_n take_v from_o the_o possibility_n of_o the_o church_n err_v be_v quite_o take_v away_o again_o §_o 38._o n._n 14._o he_o say_v that_o a_o general_n council_n de_fw-fr post_fw-la facto_fw-la after_o it_o be_v end_v and_o admit_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v then_o infallible_a and_o for_o this_o admittance_n or_o confirmation_n of_o it_o by_o the_o church_n he_o grant_v 165._o grant_v §._o 26._o p._n 165._o that_o no_o confirmation_n be_v needful_a to_o a_o general_n council_n lawful_o call_v and_o so_o proceed_v but_o only_o that_o after_o it_o be_v end_v the_o whole_a church_n admit_v it_o though_o never_o so_o tacit_o the_o sum_n of_o all_o in_o brief_a be_v this_o one_a that_o a_o general_n council_n or_o indeed_o any_o council_n whatever_o less_o than_o general_n accept_v or_o admit_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v infallible_a in_o necessary_n the_o reason_n be_v plain_a because_o he_o hold_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v so_o 2_o consequent_o that_o obedience_n and_o this_o of_o assent_n be_v due_a to_o such_o council_n or_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n that_o be_v deliver_v by_o this_o council_n as_o to_o necessary_n of_o assent_n i_o say_v to_o it_o because_o infallible_a 3_o that_o all_o be_v to_o acquiesce_v none_o presume_v to_o urge_v or_o credit_v any_o pretence_n of_o scripture_n or_o demonstration_n against_o such_o a_o judgement_n because_o infallible_a 4_o that_o it_o be_v schism_n to_o depart_v from_o the_o judgement_n of_o such_o a_o council_n because_o the_o archbishop_n hold_v all_o departure_n of_o any_o member_n from_o the_o whole_a church_n catholic_n to_o be_v so_o 139._o so_o §._o 21._o p._n 139._o §_o 38_o now_o thus_o much_o be_v profess_v by_o the_o archbishop_n if_o he_o will_v also_o allow_v the_o church_n where_o reply_v where_o or_o her_o council_n and_o not_o private_a man_n to_o judge_v what_o definition_n be_v make_v in_o matter_n necessary_a and_o 2_o will_v grant_v a_o acceptation_n of_o such_o council_n by_o a_o much_o major_a part_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n diffusive_a i_o mean_v necessary_a concern_v what_o acceptation_n of_o council_n by_o the_o church_n diffusive_a be_v only_o necessary_a of_o those_o
be_v so_o great_a and_o considerable_a as_o to_o invalidate_v the_o ratification_n of_o the_o rest_n when_o not_o nor_o see_v i_o how_o it_o can_v be_v reasonable_o defide_v yet_o a_o thing_n of_o great_a consequence_n unless_o herein_o the_o minor_a will_v be_v content_a to_o follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o much_o major_a part_n concern_v what_o council_n stand_v thus_o admit_v or_o reject_v which_o rule_n be_v it_o observe_v then_o both_o in_o a_o valid_a acceptance_n of_o the_o council_n hold_v in_o the_o western_a church_n in_o latter_a age_n protestant_n will_v be_v cast_v and_o by_o the_o determination_n of_o those_o council_n several_a of_o their_o dispute_n end_v mean_a while_n upon_o these_o and_o other_o pretence_n so_o it_o be_v that_o of_o 16._o council_n or_o thereabouts_o reckon_v up_o by_o the_o cardinal_n 5._o cardinal_n de_fw-fr council_n l._n 1._o c_o 5._o who_o decree_v all_o the_o western_a church_n wherein_o several_a of_o these_o council_n the_o most_o general_a that_o those_o time_n can_v afford_v be_v call_v for_o end_v of_o some_o controversy_n that_o both_o a_o rose_n in_o and_o trouble_v only_o the_o west_n of_o 16._o council_n i_o say_v which_o the_o western_a part_n general_o accept_v when_o luther_n appear_v and_o which_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o western_a church_n except_o these_o reformer_n continue_v still_o to_o approve_v they_o allow_v none_o of_o they_o that_o have_v handle_v matter_n of_o controversy_n wherein_o the_o present_a time_n be_v concern_v after_o the_o four_o first_o or_o the_o 5_o the_o and_z 6_o the_o but_o then_o cut_v off_o here_o the_o canon_n make_v in_o trullo_n even_o those_o wherein_o both_o east_n and_o west_n consent_v and_o so_o do_v allow_v none_o of_o any_o note_n that_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o the_o church_n for_o near_a this_o 1000_o year_n there_o be_v none_o of_o the_o more_o famous_a of_o they_o and_o the_o act_n whereof_o be_v exstant_fw-la wherein_o something_o have_v not_o be_v pass_v that_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o present_a protestant_a tenant_n 2._o tenant_n see_v 1_o disc_n §._o 50._o n._n 2._o §_o 38_o 9ly_n to_o the_o decree_n of_o these_o general_a council_n also_o when_o universal_o acknowledge_v such_o which_o yet_o when_o so_o they_o say_v may_v err_v in_o non_fw-la necessary_n they_o grant_v indeed_o a_o obedience_n due_a by_o all_o inferior_n person_n or_o church_n and_o consequent_o to_o those_o decree_n in_o which_o they_o hold_v such_o council_n unerrable_a i._n e._n in_o necessary_n if_o all_o these_o necessary_n be_v certain_o distinguishable_a from_o all_o other_o point_n that_o be_v not_o so_o they_o must_v allow_v due_a a_o obedience_n of_o assent_n §_o 39_o but_o 10_o they_o allow_v not_o absolute_o this_o obedience_n of_o assent_n to_o their_o decree_n 506._o decree_n stillingf_n p._n 506._o but_o only_o where_o inferior_n see_v just_a cause_n of_o dissent_v as_o sometime_o they_o say_v they_o may_v since_o all_o these_o council_n be_v liable_a to_o error_n in_o nonfundamentals_a which_o also_o it_o be_v not_o know_v how_o far_o they_o do_v extend_v that_o of_o silence_n and_o non-publick_a contradiction_n §_o 40_o the_o church_n of_o england_n indeed_o profess_v her_o assent_n to_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o first_o four_o general_n council_n and_o mr._n stillingfleet_n i_o know_v not_o on_o what_o protestant_a ground_n say_v 375._o say_v p._n 375._o it_o be_v her_o duty_n to_o keep_v their_o decree_n and_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n as_o interpret_v by_o they_o but_o you_o may_v observe_v that_o this_o assent_n be_v not_o yield_v to_o those_o council_n because_o lawful_o general_a and_o so_o presume_v to_o be_v assist_v by_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o right_a define_n and_o delivery_n of_o all_o necessary_a faith_n for_o they_o say_v lawful_a general_n council_n not_o universal_o accept_v in_o their_o sense_n may_v err_v in_o fundamental_o and_o those_o council_n that_o be_v universal_o accept_v may_v err_v in_o nonfundamentals_a but_o because_o the_o matter_n define_v by_o they_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v for_o herself_o judge_v hereof_o ought_v to_o be_v assent_v to_o as_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o assent_n *_o be_v not_o yield_v for_o the_o authority_n define_v as_o infallible_o assist_v in_o necessary_n but_o for_o the_o seem_a evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n define_v or_o at_o least_o for_o the_o non-appearing_a evidence_n of_o the_o contrary_a *_o be_v not_o yield_v because_o that_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n be_v to_o take_v that_o for_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o these_o council_n may_v possible_o give_v of_o it_o but_o because_o those_o council_n give_v in_o their_o definition_n that_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o such_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n judge_v the_o true_a so_o that_o the_o reason_n which_o they_o give_v for_o their_o assent_n to_o these_o general_a council_n oblige_v as_o much_o their_o assent_n to_o they_o have_v they_o be_v provincial_a and_o upon_o the_o same_o term_n as_o one_o person_n or_o church_n assent_v to_o these_o council_n because_o they_o judge_v their_o decree_n consonant_a to_o god_n word_n another_o without_o withdraw_v any_o due_a obedience_n may_v dissent_v who_o judge_v the_o contrary_a and_o the_o authority_n or_o decision_n lay_v on_o christian_n no_o ground_n of_o obligation_n as_o to_o belief_n save_o the_o reasonableness_n or_o non-appearing_a unreasonableness_n of_o the_o council_n doctrine_n and_o submission_n of_o judgement_n be_v hold_v not_o lawful_o yield_v by_o any_o to_o who_o the_o contrary_a seem_v evident_a and_o by_o all_o other_o be_v to_o be_v only_o conditional_a viz._n until_o the_o contrary_n shall_v appear_v evident_a to_o this_o purpose_n 1._o §._o 41._o n._n 1._o see_v the_o 21_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n general_n council_n may_v err_v wherefore_o thing_n ordain_v by_o they_o as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n have_v neither_o strength_n nor_o authority_n unless_o it_o may_v be_v declare_v that_o they_o be_v take_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n see_v the_o act_n of_o parliament_n 1_o elizabethae_fw-la c._n 1._o wherein_o the_o determ_v or_o adjudge_v any_o thing_n heresy_n by_o any_o council_n be_v thus_o limit_v if_o in_o such_o council_n the_o same_o be_v declare_v heresy_n by_o the_o express_a and_o plain_a word_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o word_n be_v provide_v that_o such_o person_n etc._n etc._n shall_v not_o have_v authority_n to_o determine_v any_o matter_n to_o be_v heresy_n but_o only_o such_o as_o heretofore_o have_v be_v determine_v order_v or_o adjudge_v to_o be_v heresy_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n or_o by_o the_o first_o four_o general_n council_n or_o any_o of_o they_o or_o by_o any_o other_o general_a council_n wherein_o the_o same_o be_v declare_v heresy_n by_o the_o express_a and_o plain_a word_n of_o the_o say_v canonical_a scripture_n and_o see_v in_o soave_fw-it p._n 344._o 366._o the_o exception_n take_v by_o protestant_n at_o the_o safe-conduct_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n for_o not_o add_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o council_n and_o father_n fundantesse_n veraciter_fw-la in_o scriptura_fw-la as_o it_o run_v former_o in_o the_o safe-conduct_n of_o basil_n that_o the_o council_n father_n etc._n etc._n conformable_a to_o the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v judge_n by_o which_o mean_v the_o protestant_n reserve_v this_o retreat_n when_o council_n appear_v against_o they_o that_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o oblige_v by_o they_o because_o these_o council_n go_v also_o against_o the_o scripture_n see_v dr._n fern_n consid_fw-la p._n 19_o to_o all_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n we_o owe_v submission_n by_o assent_n and_o belief_n conditional_a with_o reservation_n for_o evidence_n out_o of_o god_n word_n and_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n say_v he_o we_o can_v submit_v to_o any_o company_n of_o man_n by_o resignation_n of_o our_o judgement_n and_o belief_n or_o stand_v bind_v to_o receive_v for_o faith_n and_o worship_n all_o that_o they_o shall_v define_v and_o impose_v for_o such_o for_o such_o resignation_n give_v to_o man_n what_o be_v due_a to_o god_n see_v archbishop_n laud_n p._n 245._o general_n council_n lawful_o call_v &c._n &c._n can_v err_v keep_v themselves_o to_o god_n rule_n and_o p._n 239._o in_o all_o truth_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n say_v he_o i_o shall_v easy_o grant_v a_o general_n council_n can_v err_v if_o suffer_v itself_o to_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o not_o take_v upon_o it_o to_o lead_v both_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o spirit_n see_v dr._n field_n p._n 666._o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o we_o express_o to_o believe_v whatsoever_o the_o council_n have_v conclude_v though_o it_o be_v true_a unless_o by_o some_o other_o mean_v it_o appear_v unto_o we_o
to_o be_v true_a and_o we_o be_v convince_v of_o it_o in_o some_o other_o sort_n than_o by_o the_o bare_a determination_n of_o the_o council_n only_o but_o it_o suffice_v that_o we_o be_v ready_a express_o to_o believe_v it_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v make_v to_o appear_v unto_o we_o see_v dr._n hammond_n of_o heresy_n p._n 96._o '_o it_o be_v hence_o manifest_a also_o what_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o that_o reverence_n that_o be_v by_o all_o sober_a christian_n deem_v due_a and_o pay_v to_o the_o first_o four_o general_n council_n because_o one_a they_o set_v down_o and_o convince_v the_o truth_n of_o their_o doctrine_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 2_o because_o they_o be_v so_o near_o the_o apostle_n time_n when_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o apostle_n may_v more_o easy_o be_v fetch_v from_o those_o man_n and_o church_n to_o who_o they_o have_v commit_v it_o thus_o he_o though_o beside_o that_o the_o first_o of_o these_o council_n be_v almost_o at_o 300._o year_n distance_n the_o reason_n of_o obedience_n to_o church_n governor_n give_v by_o doctor_n hammond_n elsewhere_o 903._o elsewhere_o of_o fundamental_o p._n 903._o viz._n '_o because_o christ_n speak_v to_o we_o in_o those_o governor_n as_o his_o immediate_a successor_n in_o the_o prophetic_a pastoral_n episcopal_a office_n infer_v that_o the_o church_n authority_n in_o all_o age_n be_v equal_o valid_a and_o so_o void_v this_o reason_n he_o go_v on_o three_o because_o the_o great_a fundamental_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n be_v the_o matter_n of_o their_o definition_n yet_o he_o say_v see_v disc_n 1._o §_o 6._o that_o general_a council_n be_v no_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_o and_o 115._o and_o of_o heresy_n p._n 115._o that_o it_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o decree_n and_o the_o apostolicalness_n of_o they_o and_o the_o force_n of_o the_o testification_n whereby_o they_o be_v approve_v and_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v such_o which_o give_v the_o authority_n to_o the_o council_n and_o nothing_o else_o be_v sufficient_a where_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v see_v mr._n chillingw_o p._n 118._o dr._n potter_n 2._o §._o 41._o n._n 2._o together_o with_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n attribute_v to_o the_o church_n nay_o to_o particular_a church_n and_o i_o subscribe_v to_o his_o opinion_n a_o authority_n of_o determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o plain_a and_o evident_a scripture_n and_o universal_a tradition_n and_o infallibility_n whilst_o they_o proceed_v according_a to_o this_o rule_n and_o p._n 200._o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n say_v he_o in_o aftertime_n i._n e._n after_o the_o apostle_n might_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o declare_v their_o judgement_n touch_v the_o sense_n of_o some_o general_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n but_o to_o oblige_v other_o to_o receive_v their_o declaration_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n what_o warrant_v they_o have_v i_o know_v not_o he_o that_o can_v show_v either_o that_o the_o church_n of_o all_o age_n be_v to_o have_v this_o authority_n or_o that_o it_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n for_o some_o age_n and_o then_o expire_v he_o that_o can_v show_v either_o of_o these_o thing_n let_v he_o for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v yet_o i_o willing_o confess_v the_o judgement_n of_o a_o council_n though_o not_o infallible_a be_v yet_o so_o far_o directive_n and_o oblige_v that_o without_o apparent_a reason_n to_o the_o contrary_a it_o may_v be_v sin_n to_o reject_v it_o at_o least_o not_o to_o afford_v it_o a_o outward_a submission_n for_o public_a peace_n sake_n see_v mr._n whitby_n p._n 92._o we_o do_v appeal_v to_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n not_o because_o we_o believe_v they_o infallible_a but_o because_o we_o conceive_v they_o to_o agree_v with_o scripture_n which_o be_v infallible_a so_o that_o we_o make_v they_o secondary_a not_o primary_n guide_n we_o resolve_v not_o our_o belief_n of_o their_o decree_n into_o their_o authority_n but_o into_o their_o agreement_n with_o scripture_n we_o do_v not_o say_v we_o must_v believe_v this_o or_o that_o because_o any_o one_o of_o the_o first_o four_o general_n council_n have_v define_v it_o but_o because_o what_o the_o council_n have_v define_v be_v evident_a in_o scripture_n therefore_o do_v we_o believe_v it_o and_o if_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o in_o any_o article_n they_o dissent_v from_o scripture_n we_o shall_v in_o that_o as_o much_o oppose_v they_o as_o we_o do_v you_o and_z p._n 451._o i_o answer_v with_o dr_n taylor_n that_o either_o these_o council_n be_v tie_v to_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n or_o not_o if_o the_o first_o then_o be_v they_o to_o be_v examine_v by_o it_o and_o to_o be_v follow_v no_o further_o than_o they_o adhere_v to_o this_o unerring_a rule_n examine_v he_o mean_v by_o those_o person_n who_o yet_o these_o council_n be_v to_o teach_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_z p._n 15._o we_o general_o acknowledge_v that_o no_o authority_n on_o earth_n oblige_v to_o internal_a assent_n this_o the_o firm_a ground_n i._n e._n his_o own_o judgement_n what_o conciliary_a decree_n agree_v or_o disagree_v with_o scripture_n that_o this_o young_a man_n build_v on_o for_o the_o confute_v of_o mr._n cressy_n book_n see_v mr._n stillingfleet_n p._n 58._o 59_o 133_o 154_o 252._o and_o 375.517_o compare_v there_o he_o say_v on_o one_o side_n p._n 375._o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n look_v on_o it_o as_o her_o duty_n to_o keep_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o four_o general_a council_n and_o we_o profess_v say_v he_o to_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n as_o interpret_v by_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n and_o p._n 56._o he_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n admit_v not_o any_o thing_n to_o be_v deliver_v as_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o four_o first_o age_n here_o he_o seem_v to_o acknowledge_v a_o submission_n of_o protestant_n to_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o four_o first_o age_n and_o to_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n as_o their_o guide_n for_o what_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o seem_v to_o i_o no_o way_n to_o consist_v with_o a_o profession_n of_o submit_v to_o the_o same_o church_n or_o her_o council_n only_o when_o or_o as_o far_o as_o they_o agree_v in_o their_o decree_n with_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o last_o imply_v that_o i_o learn_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n not_o from_o they_o but_o another_o and_o assent_n to_o they_o where_o they_o conform_v to_o that_o judgement_n of_o which_o i_o learn_v it_o ibid_fw-la he_o have_v these_o two_o proposition_n 2_o that_o it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a prescription_n against_o any_o thing_n that_o can_v be_v allege_v out_o of_o scripture_n that_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n if_o it_o appear_v contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o this_o 2_o that_o such_o doctrine_n may_v well_o be_v judge_v destructive_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v so_o unanimous_o condemn_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n within_o that_o time_n where_v he_o allow_v not_o christian_n to_o try_v and_o so_o assent_v to_o or_o dissent_v from_o the_o decree_n of_o council_n by_o what_o appear_v to_o they_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o refer_v they_o to_o learn_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n from_o the_o decree_n of_o these_o first_o council_n but_o yet_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o contend_v how_o consistent_o i_o leave_v to_o the_o reader_n judgement_n that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v not_o pretend_v to_o be_v any_o infallible_a rule_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n in_o all_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o p._n 17._o concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n he_o say_v it_o be_v very_o unreasonable_a to_o imagine_v that_o the_o chcurch_n of_o england_n do_v own_o that_o necessity_n pure_o on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o church_n definition_n of_o those_o thing_n therein_o which_o be_v not_o fundamental_a it_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o her_o sense_n in_o her_o 19_o and_o 20_o article_n and_o that_o hence_o the_o suppose_a necessity_n of_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o article_n of_o this_o creed_n must_v accord_v to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v resolve_v either_o into_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o matter_n or_o into_o that_o necessity_n which_o suppose_v clear_a conviction_n that_o the_o thing_n therein_o contain_v be_v of_o divine_a revelation_n and_o p._n 133._o he_o describe_v the_o catholic_n church_n a_o society_n of_o such_o person_n who_o all_o
be_v such_o a_o evidence_n as_o propose_v to_o any_o man_n and_o therefore_o to_o these_o superior_n and_o understand_v the_o mind_n can_v choose_v but_o inward_o assent_v unto_o it_o and_o therefore_o hence_o one_o will_v think_v when_o these_o superior_n upon_o this_o proposal_n do_v not_o assent_v the_o complainer_n ought_v to_o presume_v his_o reason_n tender_v to_o they_o to_o be_v no_o demonstration_n §_o 45_o but_o next_o neither_o be_v this_o obedience_n of_o silence_n yield_v obligatory_a in_o such_o a_o case_n i._n e._n after_o that_o such_o complaint_n be_v make_v and_o that_o the_o superior_n declare_v they_o see_v no_o just_a cause_n for_o it_o nor_o reason_n demonstrative_a in_o it_o but_o they_o further_o maintain_v that_o a_o former_a general_n council_n err_v manifest_o and_o intolerable_o i._n e._n in_o the_o imagination_n and_o settle_a fancy_n of_o such_o a_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n and_o the_o present_a superior_n complain_v to_o neglect_v to_o call_v or_o procure_v another_o general_n council_n to_o reverse_v such_o error_n than_o a_o authority_n inferior_a may_v oppose_v and_o public_o contradict_v such_o error_n of_o a_o former_a general_n council_n and_o a_o inferior_a synod_n national_a or_o provincial_a for_o themselves_o may_v rescind_v such_o decree_n and_o reform_v against_o they_o 534.479_o they_o a_o p._n lawd_n p._n 227._o mr._n still_o p._n 534.479_o for_o indeed_o this_o gap_n must_v necessary_o be_v leave_v open_a to_o let_v in_o luther_n reform_v in_o the_o point_v mention_v §_o 26._o against_o the_o decree_n of_o several_a former_a council_n that_o have_v find_v before_o in_o the_o church_n a_o general_n acceptation_n for_o they_o maintain_v 34._o maintain_v see_v before_o §._o 34._o also_o the_o whole_a church_n liable_a to_o error_n in_o all_o such_o point_n as_o they_o think_v fit_a to_o call_v non-necessaries_a and_o against_o the_o very_a public_a service_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n which_o be_v in_o the_o protestant_a computation_n at_o luther_n appearance_n of_o 900_o year_n stand_v and_o if_o a_o national_a or_o provincial_a synod_n may_v claim_v such_o privilege_n to_o reform_v against_o a_o former_a general_n council_n i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o much_o more_o a_o province_n may_v not_o claim_v it_o against_o a_o national_a synod_n a_o diocese_n against_o a_o provincial_n a_o presbyter_n against_o his_o diocesan_n because_o these_o inferior_a synod_n be_v still_o more_o liable_a to_o manifest_v intolerable_a error_n and_o the_o fundamental_a reformation_n by_o luther_n be_v the_o low_a of_o these_o the_o reformation_n of_o a_o presbyter_n against_o his_o diocesan_n §_o 46_o last_o there_o remain_v yet_o one_o considerable_a more_o as_o to_z qualify_a this_o licence_n of_o public_a contradict_v which_o as_o it_o seem_v most_o reasonable_a so_o if_o it_o be_v observe_v the_o church_n unity_n and_o peace_n will_v yet_o suffer_v by_o such_o contradiction_n or_o reformation_n no_o great_a diminution_n or_o damage_n namely_o that_o those_o inferior_n only_o who_o think_v they_o can_v evidence_n and_o demonstrate_v the_o error_n of_o such_o council_n may_v claim_v the_o privilege_n to_o speak_v and_o teach_v public_o against_o they_o or_o join_v with_o those_o that_o do_v so_o but_o yet_o that_o so_o many_o as_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o have_v the_o like_a evidence_n or_o demonstration_n against_o the_o superior_n doctrine_n be_v instruct_v that_o they_o stand_v so_o long_o oblige_v in_o such_o case_n to_o relinquish_v the_o inferiors_n and_o still_o to_o adhere_v and_o submit_v to_o the_o svperior_n judgement_n for_o example_n the_o bishop_n or_o a_o provincial_a council_n teach_v one_o thing_n the_o metropolitan_a or_o a_o general_n council_n another_o that_o so_o many_o of_o such_o diocese_n or_o province_n as_o can_v demonstrate_v what_o the_o bishop_n or_o provincial_a council_n maintain_v know_v that_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o continue_v their_o obedience_n still_o to_o the_o metropolitan_a or_o general_a council_n not_o to_o the_o provincial_a council_n or_o bishop_n for_o thus_o there_o will_v be_v no_o more_o deserter_n of_o such_o council_n and_o the_o former_a church_n communion_n no_o more_o member_n of_o the_o reformation_n than_o be_v themselves_o pretender_n of_o demonstration_n and_o those_o i_o suppose_v will_v not_o be_v many_o but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o these_o inferior_a guide_n justify_v their_o reform_n not_o only_o for_o themselves_o but_o for_o all_o their_o subject_n too_o so_o far_o as_o now_o within_o their_o several_a precinct_n to_o impose_v a_o obedience_n of_o silence_n upon_o all_o towards_o they_o that_o can_v demonstrate_v against_o they_o this_o concern_v the_o protestant_n claim_v liberty_n *_o of_o break_v the_o obedience_n of_o silence_n *_o of_o complain_v *_o of_o reform_v for_o themselves_o upon_o neglect_n of_o their_o complaint_n error_n of_o council_n suppose_v by_o they_o manifest_a and_o intolerable_a §_o 47_o 12ly_n since_o error_n intolerable_a and_o manifest_a they_o affirm_v may_v be_v in_o any_o decree_n whatever_o of_o council_n if_o such_o council_n be_v not_o in_o their_o sense_n vinversal_o accept_v or_o of_o such_o also_o as_o be_v so_o accept_v if_o their_o decree_n be_v make_v in_o non-necessaries_a next_o they_o contend_v that_o the_o judgement_n when_o such_o decree_n of_o past_a council_n be_v error_n and_o those_o intolerable_a and_o over-weighing_a a_o peace_n and_o so_o these_o public_o contradictible_a and_o reformable_a be_v to_o be_v leave_v to_o every_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n 539.292_o church_n see_v still_o p._n 539.292_o but_o because_o this_o may_v seem_v of_o very_o ill_a consequence_n hear_v how_o it_o be_v bound_v and_o restrain_v this_o judgement_n then_o not_o so_o leave_v to_o they_o say_v the_o arch_a bishop_n that_o every_o private_a spirit_n may_v fall_v on_o reform_v what_o error_n he_o fancy_v such_o but_o that_o they_o bring_v such_o evidence_n and_o demonstration_n as_o be_v describe_v before_o 44._o before_o §._o 44._o prove_v such_o to_o be_v manifest_a and_o intolerable_a error_n and_o then_o again_o that_o the_o judgement_n of_o such_o demonstration_n bring_v by_o they_o be_v leave_v to_o a_o future_a council_n which_o council_n not_o allow_v they_o for_o such_o these_o inferior_n a●e_v to_o acquiesce_v as_o to_o silence_n at_o least_o in_o its_o judgement_n for_o say_v he_o 246._o he_o a_o p._n lawd_n p._n 246._o if_o the_o demonstration_n be_v evident_a to_o any_o man_n according_a to_o the_o former_a definition_n they_o give_v it_o then_o to_o so_o many_o learned_a man_n as_o be_v in_o a_o council_n doubtless_o and_o if_o they_o can_v but_o assent_v to_o it_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o think_v they_o so_o impious_a that_o they_o will_v define_v against_o it_o and_o if_o that_o which_o be_v think_v evident_a to_o any_o man_n be_v not_o evident_a to_o such_o a_o grave_a assembly_n it_o be_v probable_a it_o be_v no_o demonstration_n and_o the_o producer_n of_o it_o ought_v to_o rest_v and_o not_o to_o trouble_v the_o church_n thus_o he_o but_o one_a if_o the_o ecclesiastical_a superior_n upon_o this_o complaint_n neglect_v to_o call_v such_o council_n the_o archbishop_n than_o make_v every_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n judge_n themselves_z of_o their_o demonstration_n upon_o which_o he_o say_v they_o may_v proceed_v to_o reform_v for_o themselves_o such_o error_n 5._o error_n a_o p._n lawd_n p._n 245._o &_o 227._o comp_n §._o 33._o consid_fw-la 6._o n._n 1._o with_o §._o 32._o n._n 5._o but_o say_v i_o if_o the_o demonstration_n be_v such_o as_o be_v evident_a to_o any_o man_n than_o so_o will_v it_o be_v to_o these_o superior_n complain_v to_o and_o then_o here_o the_o producer_n of_o it_o ought_v to_o rest_v but_o this_o he_o see_v will_v present_o stop_v the_o passage_n to_o all_o reformation_n against_o superior_n whereas_o the_o council_n appeal_v to_o especial_o such_o as_o they_o will_v allow_v they_o see_v be_v far_o enough_o off_o from_o check_v their_o pretend_a evidence_n for_o what_o future_a council_n can_v ever_o be_v hope_v for_o that_o will_v not_o be_v liable_a to_o most_o of_o their_o exception_n make_v against_o that_o of_o trent_n for_o the_o place_n or_o for_o the_o call_n of_o it_o or_o for_o the_o voter_n in_o it_o &_o c_o and_o till_o then_o every_o private_a man_n or_o particular_a church_n demonstration_n as_o to_o reform_v stand_v in_o their_o full_a force_n power_n and_o virtue_n in_o the_o archbishop_n state_v this_o point_n but_o then_o 2_o imagine_v we_o such_o a_o second_o council_n call_v and_o this_o for_o the_o lawfulness_n and_o proceed_n thereof_o void_a of_o exception_n yet_o can_v it_o end_v no_o controversy_n any_o more_o than_o the_o former_a nor_o be_v it_o more_o free_a from_o appeal_n for_o so_o long_o as_o this_o future_a council_n as_o well_o as_o the_o former_a be_v liable_a to_o error_n manifest_a and_o intolerable_a
time_n and_o 3_o person_n yet_o 1_o do_v he_o so_o expound_v this_o universal_a testimony_n 2.8.10_o testimony_n see_v ib._n n._n 2.8.10_o as_o to_o signify_v only_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o most_o in_o most_o place_n in_o all_o or_o most_o time_n for_o else_o say_v he_o 2._o he_o §._o 5._o n._n 2._o there_o will_v be_v no_o heretic_n at_o any_o time_n in_o the_o world_n viz._n if_o those_o only_a shall_v be_v hold_v such_o necessary_a article_n of_o our_o say_v which_o all_o none_o except_v in_o all_o time_n do_v hold_v and_o again_o 2_o he_o make_v use_v of_o the_o church_n council_n for_o convince_a heresy_n against_o this_o faith_n viz._n of_o the_o four_o one_a general_a council_n say_v that_o all_o the_o part_n of_o this_o faith_n be_v complete_o comprehend_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o explain_v by_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o three_o first_o age_n and_o definition_n of_o the_o ●our_n first_o council_n so_o that_o in_o sum_n he_o who_o embrace_v all_o the_o traditional_a doctrine_n propose_v by_o they_o embrace_v all_o the_o necessary_a faith_n thus_o universal_o deliver_v which_o can_v come_v to_o the_o five_o age_n etc._n etc._n but_o through_o the_o four_o and_o three_o and_o so_o can_v be_v no_o heretic_n see_v 7._o §_o 6_o 7_o 8._o n._n his_o word_n there_o n._n 7._o be_v of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o of_o those_o four_o council_n as_o the_o repository_n of_o all_o true_a apostolical_a tradition_n i_o suppose_v it_o very_o regular_a to_o affirm_v that_o the_o entire_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n be_v to_o be_v establish_v and_o all_o heresy_n convince_v or_o else_o that_o there_o be_v no_o just_a reason_n that_o any_o doctrine_n shall_v be_v condemn_v as_o such_o and_o see_v what_o be_v cite_v out_o of_o he_o concern_v these_o council_n before_o §_o 19_o and_o of_o heresy_n §_o 14._o n._n 10._o but_o here_o since_o he_o admit_v council_n for_o convince_a heresy_n why_o rest_v he_o in_o the_o four_o first_o and_o why_o admit_v he_o not_o all_o council_n in_o whatever_o age_n that_o be_v of_o equal_a authority_n for_o the_o same_o discovery_n since_o many_o new_a error_n against_o tradicive_a faith_n may_v arise_v after_o the_o four_o first_o and_o the_o church_n late_a council_n according_o may_v testify_v and_o declare_v the_o same_o faith_n as_o occasion_n be_v administer_v against_o they_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o what_o be_v traditive_a in_o any_o latter_a age_n wherein_o some_o late_a council_n be_v hold_v be_v so_o in_o the_o three_o or_o four_o and_o so_o all_o heresy_n be_v sufficient_o convince_v by_o those_o age_n then_o so_o be_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o four_o first_o council_n traditive_a in_o the_o first_o second_o or_o three_o age_n and_o therefore_o what_o need_n have_v dr._n hammond_n to_o add_v for_o conviction_n of_o heresy_n these_o four_o first_o council_n which_o be_v hold_v after_o the_o three_o first_o century_n the_o sum_n be_v for_o convince_a heresy_n either_o the_o testification_n of_o all_o lawful_a general_n council_n be_v authentical_a or_o not_o that_o of_o the_o four_o first_o but_o if_o the_o doctor_n allow_v all_o lawful_a general_n council_n to_o be_v so_o as_o something_o seem_v say_v by_o he_o to_o this_o purpose_n here_o be_v §_o 14._o n._n 1.2_o catholic_n be_v at_o accord_n with_o he_o herein_o concern_v the_o nature_n and_o trial_n of_o heresy_n and_o the_o dispute_n only_o remain_v whether_o any_o of_o those_o council_n that_o have_v heretofore_o define_v or_o testify_v any_o such_o point_n of_o faith_n traditive_a which_o be_v oppose_v by_o protestant_n be_v such_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n concern_v which_o see_v in_o 1_o disc_n §_o 36._o n._n 3._o etc._n etc._n §_o 50._o n._n 2._o §_o 57_o etc._n etc._n thus_o dr._n hammond_n restrain_v conviction_n of_o all_o heresy_n within_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o council_n but_o bishop_n branhall_n 102._o branhall_n in_o reply_n to_o bp._n chalced._n c._n 2._o p._n 102._o seem_v to_o be_v yet_o more_o free_a i_o acknowledge_v say_v he_o that_o a_o general_n council_n may_v make_v that_o reveal_v truth_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o a_o christian_a as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o former_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v that_o be_v whensoever_o the_o reason_n and_o ground_n produce_v by_o the_o council_n or_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n which_o be_v and_o always_o aught_o to_o be_v very_o great_a with_o all_o sober_a discreet_a christian_n do_v convince_v a_o man_n in_o his_o conscience_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o council_n definition_n and_o in_o vindication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n 26._o when_o inferior_a question_n not_o fundamental_a be_v once_o define_v by_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n all_o christian_n though_o they_o can_v assent_v in_o their_o judgement_n be_v oblige_v to_o passive_a obedience_n to_o possess_v their_o soul_n in_o patience_n and_o they_o who_o shall_v oppose_v the_o authority_n and_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n deserve_v to_o be_v punish_v as_o heretic_n here_o though_o the_o bishop_n make_v not_o the_o opposer_n of_o the_o council_n definition_n for_o the_o reason_n of_o oppose_v it_o heretic_n because_o he_o hold_v that_o no_o error_n but_o that_o which_o some_o way_n overthrow_v a_o fundamental_a truth_n can_v be_v heretical_a and_o though_o in_o his_o hold_n that_o council_n may_v not_o prescribe_v what_o thing_n be_v fundamental_a nor_o oblige_v any_o to_o assent_v to_o their_o judgement_n in_o what_o they_o do_v define_v further_o than_o their_o reason_n convince_v they_o he_o as_o the_o rest_n leave_v heretic_n undiscoverable_a yet_o he_o grant_v that_o all_o be_v to_o submit_v for_o noncontradiction_n to_o the_o determination_n of_o l._n g._n council_n even_o in_o all_o inferior_a point_v not_o fundamental_a and_o that_o the_o opposer_n deserve_v to_o be_v punish_v as_o heretic_n which_o if_o observe_v by_o protestant_n will_v sufficient_o keep_v the_o church_n peace_n and_o then_o concern_v the_o past_a definition_n of_o such_o council_n see_v what_o be_v argue_v with_o he_o in_o 1_o disc_n §_o 36._o n._n 3._o etc._n etc._n this_o for_o heresy_n §_o 55_o 12ly_n for_o schism_n neither_o do_v they_o enlarge_v it_o so_o far_o as_o catholic_n that_o any_o separation_n upon_o what_o cause_n soever_o from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o all_o particular_a former_a church_n or_o of_o our_o lawful_a ecclesiastical_a superior_n or_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n catholic_n be_v schism_n but_o restrain_v it_o to_o a_o separation_n culpable_a or_o causeless_a 271._o causeless_a chillingw_n p._n 271._o hold_v that_o some_o separation_n from_o they_o may_v not_o be_v so_o §_o 56_o but_o they_o leave_v we_o here_o again_o in_o uncertainty_n between_o these_o superior_n and_o inferior_n which_o of_o they_o shall_v judge_v when_o such_o separation_n be_v causeless_a when_o otherwise_o and_o so_o uncertain_a of_o schism_n or_o also_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o inferior_n be_v to_o judge_v when_o their_o superior_n require_v unjust_a thing_n as_o condition_n of_o their_o communion_n and_o so_o when_o a_o separation_n from_o they_o be_v lawful_a or_o culpable_a of_o which_o thus_o mr._n stillingfleet_n 292._o stillingfleet_n p._n 292._o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o unreasonable_a than_o that_o the_o society_n impose_v certain_a condition_n of_o communion_n shall_v be_v judge_n whether_o those_o condition_n be_v just_a and_o equitable_a or_o no_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n may_v thus_o be_v produce_v from_o other_o protestant-tenent_n for_o they_o hold_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v infallible_a only_o in_o absolute_a necessary_n or_o fundamental_o errable_a in_o other_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o its_o governor_n collect_v in_o their_o supreme_a council_n may_v also_o enjoin_v such_o error_n as_o condition_n of_o their_o communion_n that_o these_o error_n at_o least_o some_o of_o they_o may_v be_v certain_o and_o demonstrative_o discernible_a by_o inferior_n and_o these_o complain_v of_o and_o not_o amend_v by_o superior_n that_o they_o may_v lawful_o separate_v in_o the_o sense_n explain_v before_o §_o 20._o from_o such_o communion_n wherein_o these_o be_v impose_v here_o therefore_o inferior_n judge_v when_o the_o separation_n be_v just_a when_o causeless_a and_o upon_o this_o account_n sure_o no_o separation_n will_v ever_o be_v i_o do_v not_o say_v schism_n but_o discover_v to_o be_v schism_n if_o the_o separatist_n be_v to_o judge_n when_o it_o be_v so_o but_o if_o the_o superior_n be_v to_o judge_n when_o a_o separation_n from_o they_o and_o from_o their_o definition_n impose_v be_v culpable_a or_o causeless_a it_o will_v either_o be_v always_o judge_v such_o which_o be_v the_o catholic_n doctrine_n or_o such_o a_o granted-just_a cause_n will_v be_v remove_v by_o these_o superior_n and_o so_o there_o will_v be_v no_o
church_n we_o believe_v in_o our_o creed_n 2_o lie_n since_o both_o these_o eastern_a and_o western_a require_v the_o very_a same_o condition_n of_o communion_n as_o they_o do_v now_o before_o luther_n day_n it_o follow_v that_o then_o they_o be_v also_o no_o less_o than_o now_o schismatical_a and_o so_o fall_v from_o catholic_n for_o this_o that_o all_o people_n that_o be_v their_o subject_n conform_v to_o such_o condition_n or_o some_o not_o conform_v alter_v not_o their_o guilt_n who_o then_o impose_v such_o thing_n or_o if_o it_o do_v it_o seem_v then_o the_o great_a when_o all_o do_v conform_v and_o be_v mislead_v by_o they_o and_o upon_o this_o again_o it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v then_o the_o protestant_n church_n not_o yet_o bear_v no_o catholic_n church_n at_o all_o contrary_a to_o the_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n the_o whole_a be_v involve_v in_o schism_n if_o all_o then_o conform_v of_o which_o conformity_n the_o archbishop_n say_v 296.297_o say_v p._n 296.297_o and_o mr._n stillingfleet_n the_o same_o 618_o same_o p._n 618_o that_o he_o that_o believe_v as_o that_o church_n believe_v speak_v of_o the_o roman_a and_o so_o may_v all_o those_o be_v presume_v to_o believe_v that_o live_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o a_o resolution_n to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o it_o be_v guilty_a more_o or_o less_o of_o the_o schism_n which_o that_o church_n first_o cause_v by_o her_o corruption_n and_o now_o continue_v by_o they_o and_o her_o power_n together_o and_o of_o all_o other_o damnable_a opinion_n too_o in_o point_n of_o misbelief_n and_o of_o all_o other_o sin_n also_o which_o the_o doctrine_n and_o misbelief_n of_o that_o church_n lead_v he_o into_o and_o afterward_o that_o he_o who_o live_v in_o a_o shismatical_a church_n and_o communicate_v with_o it_o in_o the_o schism_n and_o in_o all_o the_o superstition_n and_o corruption_n which_o that_o church_n teach_v nay_o life_n and_o die_v in_o they_o if_o he_o be_v of_o capacity_n enough_o and_o understand_v it_o he_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o formal_a schismatic_a or_o a_o involve_a one_o if_o he_o understand_v it_o not_o thus_o he_o or_o if_o some_o then_o do_v not_o conform_v to_o what_o these_o guide_n require_v yet_o it_o follow_v at_o least_o that_o there_o be_v then_o no_o know_v ecclesiastical_a governor_n and_o leader_n no_o bishop_n in_o or_o of_o that_o church_n catholic_n that_o then_o be_v for_o we_o know_v of_o none_o such_o that_o in_o the_o age_n before_o luther_n oppose_v such_o a_o conformity_n and_o that_o it_o be_v make_v up_o of_o laic_n and_o inferior_n i._n e._n make_v up_o only_o of_o some_o sheep_n that_o be_v depart_v and_o strangle_v from_o their_o shepherd_n or_o rather_o the_o shepherd_n from_o they_o absurdity_n that_o need_v be_v no_o further_o aggravate_v but_o 2_o lie_v to_o what_o be_v say_v it_o be_v answer_v 1._o that_o neither_o can_v the_o supreme_a guide_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n in_o a_o approve_a council_n at_o any_o time_n require_v unjust_a condition_n of_o their_o communion_n of_o which_o see_v before_o §_o 21._o 2._o §._o 63._o n._n 2._o and_o what_o st._n austin_n 118._o austin_n epist_n 118._o say_v of_o general_a church_n practice_n be_v as_o or_o more_o true_a of_o her_o doctrine_n si_fw-la quid_fw-la horum_fw-la per_fw-la orbem_fw-la frequent_a at_o or_o cred_a it_o ecclesia_fw-la hoc_fw-la quin_fw-la it_o a_o faciendum_fw-la or_o credendum_fw-la fit_a disputare_fw-la insolentissimae_fw-la insaniae_fw-la est_fw-la 2._o nor_o though_o this_o shall_v be_v grant_v and_o also_o that_o they_o excommunicate_v those_o that_o refuse_v to_o conform_v can_v they_o thereby_o become_v guilty_a of_o schism_n for_o 1_o schism_n i_o mean_v such_o as_o separate_v and_o divide_v from_o the_o catholic_n church_n can_v never_o be_v of_o a_o much_o major_n and_o more_o dignify_a part_n in_o respect_n of_o a_o less_o and_o inferior_a subject_a to_o it_o i._n e._n the_o main_a body_n be_v a_o schismatic_a from_o some_o single_a member_n thereof_o for_o this_o main_a body_n in_o any_o division_n be_v right_o take_v for_o that_o whole_a see_z 2_o d._n disc_n §_o 25._o from_o which_o a_o separation_n be_v schism_n and_o to_o which_o every_o member_n ought_v to_o adhere_v as_o to_o the_o body_n and_o the_o head_n here_o upon_o earth_n to_o which_o it_o belong_v the_o sin_n of_o schism_n i_o say_v be_v of_o a_o member_n depart_v from_o the_o body_n not_o of_o the_o body_n separate_v from_o a_o member_n or_o separate_v a_o member_n from_o it_o to_o which_o each_o member_n ought_v to_o conform_v otherwise_o a_o division_n in_o the_o church_n indeed_o may_v be_v see_v but_o on_o what_o side_n the_o crime_n of_o schism_n be_v can_v by_o any_o certain_a index_n of_o it_o be_v know_v and_o st._n augustine_n 4._o augustine_n de_fw-fr unitat_fw-la ecclae_n c._n 4._o mark_n of_o schismatic_n quorum_fw-la communio_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la cum_fw-la toto_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o aliquâ_fw-la parte_fw-la separatâ_fw-la will_v be_v fallacious_a and_o nothing_o worth_a meanwhile_o it_o be_v not_o here_o deny_v that_o the_o divide_v of_o one_o or_o several_a superior_n from_o a_o inferior_a part_n if_o it_o be_v for_o any_o thing_n wherein_o such_o part_n not_o they_o do_v agree_v with_o the_o whole_a may_v be_v schism_n but_o then_o that_o which_o make_v this_o schism_n be_v the_o departure_n of_o such_o superior_n from_o their_o superior_n or_o from_o the_o whole_a with_o which_o this_o part_n coheres_fw-la and_o when_o any_o superior_a make_v any_o such_o division_n from_o his_o subject_n he_o be_v no_o long_o their_o lawful_a su●eriour_n but_o that_o large_a body_n and_o those_o superior_n of_o he_o to_o which_o his_o subject_n be_v join_v and_o from_o which_o he_o divide_v 2_o again_o since_o schism_n be_v always_o a_o relinquish_a of_o and_o departure_n from_o the_o external_a and_o visible_a communion_n of_o the_o church_n these_o governor_n can_v be_v say_v to_o depart_v from_o that_o communion_n which_o they_o still_o retain_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o former_o and_o which_o be_v the_o only_a visible_a communion_n of_o the_o church_n at_o the_o time_n of_o such_o excommunication_n external_n member_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o they_o still_o remain_v and_o so_o no_o schismatic_n though_o all_o the_o same_o person_n or_o many_o of_o they_o by_o some_o other_o mortal_a sin_n may_v be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n no_o internal_a member_n of_o it_o 3._o and_o as_o they_o can_v be_v right_o call_v schismatic_n or_o person_n divide_v from_o the_o church-catholick_n 3._o §._o 63._o n._n 3._o so_o neither_o can_v such_o superior_n by_o impose_v some_o error_n on_o man_n belief_n or_o by_o inflict_v a_o unjust_a excommunication_n be_v therefore_o say_v to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o schism_n or_o a_o actual_a separation_n in_o other_o as_o they_o be_v often_o charge_v 133.142_o charge_v ap._n laud_n p._n 133.142_o unless_o to_o be_v excommunicate_v be_v such_o for_o the_o church_n concur_v to_o no_o other_o separation_n if_o any_o so_o excommunicate_v do_v not_o quiet_o submit_v thereto_o and_o acquiesce_v therein_o with_o patience_n but_o proceed_v so_o much_o further_o as_o to_o set_v up_o or_o join_v himself_o with_o a_o communion_n diverse_a from_o that_o of_o the_o former_a church_n which_o he_o be_v expel_v from_o or_o presume_v to_o exercise_v out_o of_o the_o church_n those_o ecclesiastical_a function_n which_o she_o have_v though_o wrongful_o suspend_v here_o indeed_o begin_v a_o faulty_a separation_n and_o a_o schism_n but_o by_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o excommunicate_v not_o of_o the_o church_n that_o unjust_o excommunicate_v he_o but_o do_v not_o thereby_o necessitate_v he_o to_o any_o such_o further_a removal_n or_o discession_n from_o it_o have_v he_o rest_v in_o the_o place_n where_o the_o church_n leave_v he_o the_o church_n have_v be_v faulty_a indeed_o he_o innocent_a but_o on_o no_o hand_n a_o schism_n and_o if_o he_o will_v not_o stay_v here_o but_o set_v up_o a_o anti-communion_n and_o fall_v on_o act_v against_o the_o church_n that_o expel_v he_o here_o he_o can_v defend_v the_o do_v a_o wrong_n because_o he_o have_v suffer_v one_o or_o just_o disburden_v on_o the_o church_n that_o fault_n of_o he_o to_o which_o no_o fault_n of_o they_o necessitate_v he_o saepe_fw-la sinit_fw-la divina_fw-la providentia_fw-la say_v st._n austin_n 6._o austin_n de_fw-fr verâ_fw-la religione_fw-la c._n 6._o expelli_fw-la de_fw-la congregatione_fw-la christianâ_fw-la etiam_fw-la bonos_fw-es viros_fw-la quam_fw-la contumeliam_fw-la vel_fw-la injuriam_fw-la svam_fw-la cum_fw-la patientissime_fw-la pro_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la pace_fw-la tulerint_fw-la neque_fw-la ullas_fw-la novitates_fw-la vel_fw-la shismatis_fw-la vel_fw-la haeresis_fw-la moliti_fw-la fuerint_fw-la docebunt_fw-la homines_fw-la quantâ_fw-la sinceritate_fw-la charitatis_fw-la deo_fw-la serviendum_fw-la sit_fw-la etc._n etc._n neque_fw-la ullas_fw-la novitates_fw-la vel_fw-la schismatis_fw-la therefore_o
p._n 506._o 537._o no_o authority_n on_o earth_n can_v oblige_v to_o internal_a assent_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o to_o any_o far_a obedience_n than_o that_o of_o silence_n prot._n yes_o you_o stand_v oblige_v to_o yield_v a_o conditional_a assent_n at_o least_o to_o the_o definition_n of_o these_o high_a court_n i._n e._n unless_o you_o can_v bring_v evident_a scripture_n or_o demonstration_n against_o they_o soc._n i_o do_v not_o think_v protestant_a divine_v agree_v in_o this_o i_o find_v indeed_o the_o archbp_a 1._o archbp_a §._o 32_o n._n 5._o &_o §._o 33._o consid_fw-la 5._o n._n 1._o require_v evidence_n and_o demonstration_n for_o inferior_n contradict_v or_o publish_v their_o dissent_n from_o the_o council_n decree_n but_o not_o require_v thus_o much_o for_o their_o denial_n of_o assent_n and_o i_o be_o tell_v 45._o tell_v dr._n ferne_n case_n between_o the_o church_n p._n 48._o 49._o &_o division_n of_o church_n p._n 45._o that_o in_o matter_n propose_v by_o my_o superior_n as_o god_n word_n and_o of_o faith_n i_o be_o not_o tie_v to_o believe_v it_o such_o till_o they_o manifest_v it_o to_o i_o to_o be_v so_o and_o not_o that_o i_o be_o to_o believe_v it_o such_o unless_o i_o can_v manifest_v it_o to_o be_v contrary_a because_o my_o faith_n can_v rest_v on_o no_o humane_a authority_n but_o only_o on_o god_n word_n and_o divine_a revelation_n and_o dr._n field_n say_v 666._o say_v p._n 666._o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a express_o to_o believe_v whatsoever_o the_o council_n have_v conclude_v though_o it_o be_v true_a unless_o by_o some_o other_o mean_v it_o appear_v unto_o we_o to_o be_v true_a and_o we_o be_v convince_v of_o it_o in_o some_o other_o sort_n than_o by_o the_o bare_a determination_n of_o the_o council_n till_o i_o be_o convince_v then_o of_o my_o error_n the_o obedience_n of_o silence_n be_v the_o most_o that_o can_v be_v require_v of_o i_o §_o 20_o but_o 6_o i_o conceive_v myself_o in_o this_o point_n not_o oblige_v to_o this_o neither_o consider_v my_o present_a persuasion_n that_o this_o council_n manifest_o err_v and_o that_o in_o a_o error_n of_o such_o high_a consequence_n concern_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n as_o be_v no_o way_n to_o be_v tolerate_v and_o i_o want_v not_o evident_a scripture_n and_o many_o other_o unanswerable_a demonstration_n to_o show_v it_o do_v so_o and_o therefore_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o honourable_a function_n of_o the_o ministry_n i_o conceive_v i_o have_v a_o lawful_a commission_n from_o a_o high_a authority_n to_o publish_v this_o great_a truth_n of_o god_n and_o to_o contradict_v the_o council_n decree_n §_o 21_o prot._n but_o you_o may_v easy_o mistake_v that_o for_o evident_a scripture_n and_o those_o for_o demonstration_n that_o be_v not_o concern_v which_o you_o know_v what_o the_o archbp_a and_o mr._n hooker_n say_v 245._o say_v ap._n lawd_n 245._o that_o they_o be_v such_o as_o propose_v to_o any_o man_n and_o understand_v the_o mind_n can_v choose_v but_o inward_o assent_v to_o they_o 227._o they_o id._n p._n 227._o you_o ought_v therefore_o first_o to_o propose_v these_o to_o your_o superior_n or_o to_o the_o church_n desire_v a_o redress_n of_o such_o error_n by_o her_o call_v another_o council_n and_o if_o these_o superior_n acquaint_v therewith_o dislike_v your_o demonstration_n which_o the_o definition_n say_v if_o they_o be_v right_a one_o they_o must_v be_v by_o all_o and_o therefore_o by_o they_o assent_v to_o methinks_v though_o this_o be_v not_o say_v by_o the_o archbp_a in_o humility_n you_o ought_v also_o to_o suspect_v these_o demonstration_n and_o remain_v in_o silence_n at_o least_o and_o no_o further_o trouble_v the_o church_n soc._n may_v therefore_o no_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n proeed_o to_o a_o reformation_n of_o a_o form_n doctrine_n if_o these_o superior_n first_o complain_v to_o declare_v the_o ground_n of_o such_o person_n or_o church_n for_o it_o not_o sufficient_a prot._n i_o must_v not_o say_v so_o but_o if_o they_o neglect_v as_o they_o may_v to_o consider_v their_o just_a reason_n so_o diligent_o as_o they_o ought_v and_o to_o call_v a_o council_n for_o the_o correct_v of_o such_o error_n according_a to_o the_o weight_n of_o these_o reason_n than_o here_o be_v place_n for_o inferior_n to_o proceed_v to_o a_o reformation_n of_o such_o error_n without_o they_o soc._n and_o who_o then_o shall_v judge_v whether_o the_o reason_n pretend_v be_v defective_a or_o rather_o the_o present_a church_n negligent_a in_o consider_v they_o prot._n here_o i_o confess_v to_o make_v the_o superior_n judge_n of_o this_o be_v to_o cast_v the_o plaintiff_n before_o that_o any_o council_n shall_v hear_v his_o grievance_n these_o superior_n who_o faith_n appear_v to_o adhere_v to_o the_o former_a council_n be_v only_a judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n and_o so_o the_o liberty_n of_o complain_v will_v come_v to_o nothing_o 479.292_o nothing_o still_o p_o 479.292_o soc._n the_o inferior_n then_o that_o complain_v i_o suppose_v be_v to_o judge_v of_o this_o to_o proceed_v then_o to_o these_o superior_n in_o many_o diligent_a writing_n we_o have_v propose_v as_o we_o think_v many_o unanswerable_a scripture_n and_o reason_n much_o advance_v beyond_o those_o represent_v by_o our_o party_n to_o the_o former_a nicen_n council_n and_o therefore_o from_o which_o evidence_n of_o we_o we_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o hope_v from_o a_o future_a council_n a_o contrary_a sentence_n and_o find_v no_o redress_n by_o their_o calling_n another_o council_n for_o a_o review_v this_o point_n we_o can_v but_o conceive_v it_o as_o lawful_a for_o a_o socinian_n church_n pastor_n or_o bishop_n for_o to_o reform_v for_o themselves_o and_o the_o soul_n commit_v to_o they_o in_o a_o error_n appear_v to_o they_o manifest_v and_o intolerable_a as_o for_o the_o protestant_n or_o for_o dr._n luther_n to_o have_v do_v the_o same_o for_o transubstantiation_n sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o other_o point_n that_o have_v be_v conclude_v against_o the_o truth_n by_o several_a former_a council_n prot._n but_o such_o be_v not_o lawful_a general_n council_n as_o that_o of_o nice_n be_v soc._n whatever_o these_o council_n be_v this_o much_o matter_n not_o as_o to_o a_o reformation_n from_o they_o for_o have_v they_o be_v lawful_o general_n yet_o protestant_n hold_v etc._n hold_v see_v before_o disc_n 3._o §._o 34._o etc._n etc._n these_o not_o universal_o accept_v may_v err_v even_o in_o fundamental_o or_o when_o so_o accept_v yet_o may_v err_v in_o nonfundamentals_a error_n manifest_a and_o intolerable_a and_o so_o may_v be_v appeal_v from_o to_o future_a and_o those_o not_o call_v their_o error_n present_o rectify_v by_o such_o part_n of_o christianity_n as_o discern_v it_o and_o also_o s._n austin_n c._n austin_n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la 2_o l._n 3_o c._n be_v frequent_o quote_v by_o they_o say_v that_o past_a general_n council_n err_v may_v be_v correct_v by_o other_o council_n follow_v §_o 22_o prot._n but_o i_o pray_v you_o consider_v if_o that_o famous_a council_n of_o nice_a have_v so_o err_v another_o council_n call_v may_v it_o also_o not_o err_v notwithstanding_o your_o evidence_n propose_v to_o it_o for_o though_o perhaps_o some_o new_a demonstrative_a proof_n you_o may_v pretend_v from_o several_a text_n more_o accurate_o compare_v and_o explain_v yet_o you_o will_v not_o deny_v this_o sufficient_a evidence_n to_o have_v be_v extant_a for_o that_o most_o learned_a council_n to_o have_v see_v the_o truth_n have_v then_o the_o same_o entire_a rule_n of_o faith_n as_o you_o now_o the_o scripture_n in_o which_o you_o say_v your_o clear_a evidence_n lie_v for_o their_o direction_n when_o a_o future_a council_n then_o be_v assemble_v and_o have_v hear_v your_o plea_n will_v you_o assent_v to_o it_o and_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o judgement_n thereof_o soc._n yes_o interpose_v the_o protestant-condition_n of_o assent_n if_o its_o decree_n be_v according_a to_o god_n word_n and_o we_o convince_v thereof_o prot._n why_o such_o a_o submission_n of_o judgement_n and_o assent_v i_o suppose_v you_o will_v present_o yield_v to_o i_o in_o any_o thing_n whereof_o you_o be_v convince_v by_o i_o may_v this_o future_a council_n then_o challenge_v no_o further_o duty_n from_o you_o why_o then_o shall_v the_o church_n be_v trouble_v to_o call_v it_o soc._n 542._o soc._n stillingf_n p._n 542._o though_o this_o future_a council_n also_o shall_v err_v yet_o it_o may_v afford_v remedy_n against_o inconvenience_n and_o one_o great_a inconvenience_n be_v break_v the_o church_n peace_n this_o be_v remedy_v by_o its_o authority_n if_o i_o only_o yield_v the_o obedience_n of_o silence_n thereto_o prot._n but_o if_o your_o obedience_n oblige_v not_o to_o silence_v convern_v council_n past_a because_o of_o your_o new_a evidence_n neither_o will_v it_o to_o a_o future_a if_o you_o think_v it_o also_o do_v err_v
true_a that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n blind_v man_n to_o peace_n to_o her_o determination_n reserve_v to_o man_n the_o liberty_n of_o their_o judgement_n on_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n if_o they_o violate_v that_o peace_n for_o it_o be_v plain_a on_o the_o one_o side_n where_o a_o church_n pretend_v infallibility_n the_o excommunication_n be_v direct_v against_o the_o person_n for_o refuse_v to_o give_v internal_a assent_n to_o what_o she_o define_v but_o where_o a_o church_n do_v not_o pretend_v to_o that_o the_o excommunication_n respect_v whole_o that_o overt_a act_n whereby_o the_o church_n peace_n be_v break_v and_o if_o a_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o look_v to_o her_o own_o peace_n no_o doubt_n she_o have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v such_o as_o open_o violate_v the_o bond_n of_o it_o which_o be_v only_o a_o act_n of_o caution_n in_o a_o church_n to_o preserve_v herself_o in_o unity_n but_o where_o it_o be_v give_v out_o that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a the_o excommunication_n must_v be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o unreasonable_a because_o it_o be_v against_o those_o internal_a act_n of_o the_o mind_n over_o which_o the_o church_n as_o such_o have_v no_o direct_a power_n and_o p._n 55._o he_o quote_v these_o word_n out_o of_o bp._n bramhall_n 192._o bramhall_n schism_n guard_v p._n 192._o to_o the_o same_o sense_n we_o do_v not_o suffer_v any_o man_n to_o reject_v the_o 39_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n at_o his_o pleasure_n yet_o neither_o do_v we_o look_v upon_o they_o as_o essential_o of_o save_a faith_n or_o legacy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n but_o in_o a_o mean_a as_o pious_a opinion_n fit_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o unity_n neither_o do_v we_o oblige_v any_o man_n to_o believe_v they_o but_o only_o not_o to_o contradict_v they_o by_o which_o we_o see_v what_o vast_a difference_n there_o be_v between_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v require_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o order_n to_o peace_n and_o those_o which_o be_v impose_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n etc._n etc._n last_o thus_o mr._n chillingworth_n 200._o chillingworth_n p._n 200._o of_o the_o just_a authority_n of_o council_n and_o synod_n beyond_o which_o the_o protestant_a synod_n or_o convocation_n pretend_v not_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n say_v he_o in_o after_o time_n i._n e._n after_o the_o apostle_n might_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o declare_v their_o judgement_n touch_v the_o sense_n of_o some_o general_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n but_o to_o oblige_v other_o to_o receive_v their_o declaration_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n what_o warrant_v they_o have_v i_o know_v not_o he_o that_o can_v show_v either_o that_o the_o church_n of_o all_o age_n be_v to_o have_v this_o authority_n or_o that_o it_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n for_o some_o age_n and_o then_o expire_v he_o that_o can_v show_v either_o of_o these_o thing_n let_v he_o for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v yet_o i_o willing_o confess_v the_o judgement_n of_o a_o council_n though_o not_o infallible_a be_v yet_o so_o far_o directive_n and_o oblige_v that_o without_o apparent_a reason_n to_o the_o contrary_a it_o may_v be_v sin_n to_o reject_v it_o at_o least_o not_o to_o afford_v it_o a_o outward_a submission_n for_o public_a peace_n sake_n thus_o much_o as_o the_o protestant_a synod_n seem_v content_v with_o so_o i_o allow_v again_o p._n 375._o he_o say_v any_o thing_n beside_o scripture_n and_o the_o plain_a irrefragable_a indubitable_a consequence_n of_o it_o well_o may_v protestant_n hold_v it_o as_o matter_n of_o opinion_n but_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n neither_o can_v they_o with_o coherence_n to_o their_o own_o ground_n believe_v it_o themselves_o nor_o require_v the_o belief_n of_o it_o of_o other_o without_o most_o high_a and_o most_o schismatical_a presumption_n thus_o he_o now_o i_o suppose_v that_o either_o no_o ptotestant_a church_n or_o synod_n will_v style_v the_o son_n be_v coequal_a godhead_n with_o the_o father_n a_o plain_a irrefragable_a indubitable_a scripture_n or_o consequence_n thereof_o about_o which_o be_v and_o have_v be_v so_o much_o contest_v or_o with_o as_o much_o reason_n they_o may_v call_v whatever_o point_n they_o please_v such_o however_o controvert_v and_o then_o what_o be_v say_v here_o signify_v nothing_o §_o 36_o prot._n be_v not_o mistake_v i_o pray_v especial_o concern_v the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o though_o she_o for_o several_a point_n impose_v former_o by_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v grant_v liberty_n of_o opinion_n or_o at_o least_o free_v her_o subject_n from_o obligation_n to_o believe_v so_o in_o they_o as_o the_o church_n former_o require_v yet_o as_o to_o exclusion_n of_o your_o doctrine_n she_o profess_v firm_o to_o believe_v the_o 3._o creed_n and_o concern_v the_o addition_n make_v in_o the_o two_o latter_a creed_n to_o the_o first_o dr._n hammond_n 90._o hammond_n of_o fundamental_o p._n 90._o acknowledge_v that_o they_o be_v thus_o settle_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v and_o still_o be_v in_o all_o reason_n without_o dispute_v to_o be_v receive_v and_o embrace_v by_o the_o protestant_a church_n and_o every_o meek_a member_n thereof_o with_o that_o reverence_n that_o be_v due_a to_o apostolic_a truth_n with_o that_o thankfulness_n which_o be_v our_o meet_a tribute_n to_o those_o sacred_a champion_n for_o their_o seasonable_a and_o provident_a propugn_v our_o faith_n with_o such_o timely_a and_o necessary_a application_n to_o practice_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v to_o we_o now_o under_o the_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n by_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n christ_n mediate_a successor_n in_o the_o prophetic_a pastoral_n episcopal_n office_n as_o he_o have_v former_o speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n send_v immediate_o by_o he_o may_v find_v a_o cheerful_a audience_n and_o receive_v all_o uniform_a submission_n from_o we_o thus_o dr._n hammond_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n assent_n to_o the_o 3._o creed_n she_o assent_v also_o to_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o 4_o first_o general_n council_n and_o the_o act_n 1._o eliz._n 1._o eliz._n cap._n 1._o declare_v heresy_n that_o which_o have_v be_v adjudge_v so_o by_o they_o now_o in_o the_o definition_n of_o these_o first_o 4._o general_n councll_v your_o tenant_n have_v receive_v a_o mortal_a wound_n †_o but_o last_o the_o four_o canon_n in_o the_o english_a synod_n hold_v 1640._o 4._o 1640._o can._n 4._o particular_o style_n socinianism_n a_o most_o damnable_a and_o curse_a heresy_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o article_n of_o religion_n establish_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o order_n that_o any_o convict_v of_o it_o be_v excommunicate_v and_o not_o absolve_v but_o upon_o his_o repentance_n and_o abjuration_n now_o further_o than_o this_o namely_o excommunication_n upon_o conviction_n no_o other_o church_n i_o suppose_v have_v or_o can_v proceed_v against_o your_o heresy_n it_o be_v receive_v as_o a_o common_a axiom_n in_o the_o canon_n law_n that_o ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la judicat_fw-la de_fw-fr occultis_fw-la and_o cogitationis_fw-la poenam_fw-la nemo_fw-la patitur_fw-la and_o ob_fw-la peccatum_fw-la mere_a internum_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la censura_fw-la ferri_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la and_o in_o all_o church_n every_o one_o of_o what_o internal_a persuasion_n soever_o continue_v external_o at_o least_o a_o member_n thereof_o till_o the_o church_n censure_n do_v exclude_v he_o §_o 37_o soc._n the_o church_n of_o england_n allow_v assent_v to_o and_o teach_v what_o she_o judge_v evident_a in_o the_o scripture_n for_o so_o she_o ought_v what_o she_o believe_v or_o assent_v to_o i_o look_v not_o after_o but_o what_o she_o enjoin_v now_o i_o yield_v all_o that_o obedience_n in_o this_o point_n that_o she_o require_v from_o i_o and_o so_o i_o presume_v she_o will_v acknowledge_v i_o a_o dutiful_a son_n prot._n what_o obedience_n when_o as_o you_o deny_v one_o of_o her_o chief_a and_o most_o fundamental_a doctrine_n soc._n if_o i_o mistake_v not_o her_o principle_n she_o require_v of_o i_o no_o internal_a belief_n or_o assent_n to_o any_o of_o her_o doctrine_n but_o only_o 1_o silence_n or_o noncontradiction_n 4._o noncontradiction_n see_v disc_n 3_o §_o 84._o n._n 2._o &_o n._n 4._o or_o 2_o a_o conditional_a belief_n i._n e._n whenever_o i_o shall_v be_v convince_v of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o now_o in_o both_o these_o i_o most_o ready_o obey_v she_o for_o the_o one_a i_o have_v strict_o observe_v it_o keep_v my_o opinion_n to_o myself_o unless_o this_o my_o discourse_n with_o you_o have_v be_v a_o breach_n of_o it_o but_o then_o i_o be_v at_o least_o a_o dutiful_a subject_n of_o this_o church_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o our_o discourse_n and_o for_o the_o 2d_o whether_o actual_a conviction_n or_o sufficient_a proposal_n be_v make_v the_o condition_n of_o my_o assent_n or_o submission_n of_o
§_o 8._o reply_n §_o 9_o 2._o or_o make_v to_o all_o the_o succeed_a church-guide_n but_o conditional_a §_o 12._o reply_n that_o our_o lord_n promise_v of_o indeficiency_n in_o necessary_n make_v to_o the_o clergy_n be_v absolute_a §_o 14._o and_o this_o indeficiency_n most_o rational_o place_v in_o the_o general_a council_n or_o other_o accord_n or_o consent_v of_o the_o clergy_n equivalent_a to_o such_o council_n §_o 15._o chap._n 3._o some_o protestant_a objection_n §_o 17._o answer_v §_o 18._o chap._n 4._o ii_o other_o protestant_n divine_v grant_v the_o clergy_n some_o or_o other_o of_o they_o always_o unerring_a in_o necessary_n but_o this_o not_o necessary_o the_o superior_a or_o major_a part_n of_o they_o §_o 25._o reply_n that_o the_o subordinate_a clergy_n can_v be_v no_o guide_n to_o christian_n when_o oppose_v the_o superior_a nor_o a_o few_o oppose_v a_o much_o major_a part_n §_o 30._o chap._n 5._o iii_o other_o expression_n of_o protestant_a divine_n grant_v the_o church_n prelatic_a clergy_n as_o define_v her_o doctrine_n or_o the_o general_a council_n of_o they_o to_o be_v unerrable_a in_o necessary_n when_o these_o council_n accept_v by_o the_o church_n universal_a §_o 32._o expression_n to_o this_o purpose_n *_o of_o dr._n potter_n §_o 33._o *_o of_o bp._n bramhal_v §_o 34._o where_o concern_v what_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n sufficient_o oblige_v in_o respect_n 1._o of_o the_o church_n catholic_n diffusive_a §_o 36_o n._n 1._o 2._o of_o council_n general_n §_o ib._n n._n 8._o where_o of_o the_o freedom_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n §_o ib._n n._n 9_o *_o of_o bp._n lawd_n §_o 37._o where_o concern_v what_o acceptation_n of_o council_n by_o the_o church_n diffusive_a be_v only_o necessary_a §_o 38._o *_o of_o dr_n field_n §_o 40._o chap._n 6._o iu._n learned_a protestant_n concede_v the_o former_a church_n clergy_n precede_v the_o reformation_n never_o so_o to_o have_v err_v in_o define_v necessary_n as_o that_o the_o church_n govern_v by_o they_o do_v not_o remain_v still_o true_a holy_a and_o catholic_n §_o 41._o chap._n 7._o v_o that_o according_a to_o this_o last_o concession_n §_o 41._o there_o seem_v to_o be_v *_o a_o great_a security_n to_o those_o continue_v still_o in_o the_o ancient_a communion_n §_o 48_o as_o to_o avoid_v heresy_n or_o schism_n ibid._n as_o to_o other_o gross_a error_n §_o 51._o and_o *_o danger_n to_o those_o desert_v it_o §_o 54._o where_o there_o protestant_n defence_n for_o it_o §_o 55._o n._n 1._o and_o the_o catholic_n remonstrance_n ib._n n._n 2._o chap._n 8._o vi_o that_o according_a to_o the_o former_a concession_n §_o 32._o if_o so_o enlarge_v as_o ancient_a church-practise_a and_o reason_n require_v all_o or_o most_o of_o the_o protestant_a controversy_n be_v by_o former_a oblige_a council_n already_o decide_v §_o 56._o n._n 1._o etc._n etc._n a_o instance_n hereof_o in_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o corporal_a presence_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o eucharist_n or_o transubstantiation_n §_o 57_o the_o second_o discourse_n proceed_v upon_o the_o concession_n of_o learned_a protestant_n that_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n some_o or_o other_o in_o all_o age_n do_v infallible_o guide_v their_o subject_n in_o necessary_n to_o search_v which_o in_o any_o division_n of_o these_o pastor_n be_v those_o to_o who_o christian_n ought_v to_o adhere_v and_o yield_v their_o obedience_n the_o content_n chap._n 1._o protestant's_n grant_n 1._o that_o there_o be_v at_o this_o present_a a_o one_o holy_a catholic_n and_o apostolic_a church_n §_o 1._o 2._o that_o the_o present_a pastor_n and_o governor_n thereof_o have_v authority_n to_o decide_v controversy_n §_o 2._o 3._o that_o these_o governor_n some_o or_o other_o of_o they_o shall_v never_o err_v or_o miss-guide_a christian_n at_o least_o in_o absolute_a necessary_n to_o salvation_n §_o 3._o 4._o that_o they_o and_o the_o church_n govern_v by_o they_o stand_v always_o distinct_a from_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a congregation_n §_o 5._o chap._n 2._o catholic_n further_o affirm_v 5._o that_o if_o these_o pastor_n guide_v uner_o in_o necessary_n the_o people_n be_v to_o learn_v from_o they_o what_o or_o how_o many_o points_z be_v necessary_a so_o far_o as_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o be_v necessary_a to_o they_o §_o 6._o 6._o again_o that_o the_o necessary_n wherein_o these_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n be_v infallible_a guide_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v confine_v to_o some_o few_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a but_o extend_v to_o all_o such_o point_n of_o faith_n as_o be_v very_o beneficial_a to_o salvation_n §_o 9_o 7._o concern_v the_o exact_a distinguish_n of_o necessary_n from_o non-necessaries_a 1._o that_o there_o seem_v no_o necessity_n that_o the_o church_n guide_v shall_v be_v enable_v exact_o to_o distinguish_v they_o §_o 12._o 2._o that_o they_o may_v infallible_o guide_v in_o they_o though_o not_o infallible_o distinguish_v they_o §_o 14._o 3._o that_o they_o guide_v infallible_o in_o all_o necessary_n and_o no_o distinction_n of_o these_o make_v ought_v to_o be_v believe_v in_o all_o point_v they_o propose_v except_o a_o infallible_a certainty_n can_v be_v show_v to_o the_o contrary_n §_o 15._o 4._o that_o these_o governor_n do_v distinguish_v and_o do_v propose_v as_o such_o all_o those_o more_o necessary_a point_n which_o it_o be_v requisite_a for_o christian_n with_o a_o more_o particular_a explicit_a faith_n to_o believe_v §_o 17._o 8_o that_o christian_n submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o the_o present_a church-governor_n in_o decide_v all_o necessary_a matter_n of_o faith_n ought_v also_o to_o submit_v it_o to_o they_o in_o declare_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o father_n or_o of_o the_o definition_n of_o council_n and_o former_a church_n concern_v the_o same_o matter_n §_o 19_o 9_o that_o suppose_v these_o guide_n to_o err_v in_o some_o of_o their_o decision_n yet_o their_o subject_n by_o the_o concession_n of_o learned_a protestant_n ought_v to_o yield_v the_o obedience_n either_o of_o silence_n or_o also_o of_o assent_n to_o they_o in_o all_o such_o point_n whereof_o they_o can_v demonstrative_o prove_v the_o contrary_n §_o 20._o 10._o from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o none_o may_v adhere_v to_o any_o new_a guide_n but_o only_o so_o many_o as_o can_v demonstrate_v the_o error_n of_o the_o former_a §_o 21._o chap._n 3._o 11._o grant_v by_o all_o that_o these_o church_n governor_n may_v teach_v diverse_o and_o some_o of_o they_o more_o or_o few_o may_v become_v erroneous_a in_o necessary_n and_o misguide_v christian_n in_o they_o §_o 22._o 12._o in_o such_o dissent_v therefore_o that_o there_o must_v be_v some_o rule_n for_o christian_n which_o guide_v they_o ought_v to_o follow_v and_o that_o this_o be_v and_o rational_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o in_o these_o judge_n subordinate_a dissent_v to_o adhere_v to_o the_o superior_a in_o those_o of_o the_o same_o order_n and_o dignity_n dissent_v to_o the_o major_a part_n §_o 23._o where_o of_o the_o major_a part_n conclude_v the_o whole_a in_o the_o ancient_a council_n §_o 25._o n._n 2._o and_o of_o the_o magnitude_n of_o the_o defection_n of_o the_o church-prelacy_a in_o the_o time_n of_o arrianism_n §_o 26._o n._n 2._o 13._o that_o according_o both_o in_o council_n their_o define_v matter_n of_o religion_n and_o in_o the_o church_n acceptation_n of_o their_o decree_n the_o much_o major_a part_n must_v conclude_v the_o whole_a and_o the_o oppose_a of_o their_o definition_n also_o be_v heresy_n and_o separation_n from_o their_o communion_n schism_n if_o a_o opposition_n or_o separation_n from_o the_o whole_a be_v so_o §_o 27._o n._n 4._o 14._o as_o for_o the_o protestant_a mark_n whereby_o in_o any_o division_n to_o know_v these_o true_a guide_n viz._n a_o right_a teach_n of_o god_n word_n and_o a_o right_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o these_o be_v thing_n to_o be_v learn_v from_o these_o true_a guide_n first_o know_v §_o 28._o chap._n 4._o a_o application_n of_o the_o former_a proposition_n in_o a_o search_n which_o of_o the_o opposite_a present_a church_n or_o of_o the_o dissent_v ecclesiastical_a governor_n thereof_o be_v our_o true_a guide_n §_o 30._o motive_n persuade_v that_o the_o roman_a and_o the_o other_o western_a church_n unite_v with_o it_o and_o with_o the_o head_n thereof_o st._n peter_n successor_n be_v this_o true_a guide_n 1._o their_o be_v the_o very_a same_o body_n with_o that_o which_o protestant_n grant_v be_v 150_o year_n ago_o the_o christian_n be_v true_a guide_n and_o the_o other_o body_n confess_v themselves_o in_o external_a communion_n depart_v from_o it_o §_o 33._o 2._o their_o be_v that_o body_n to_o which_o if_o we_o follow_v the_o former_a rule_n recite_v prop._n 12._o we_o ought_v to_o submit_v §_o 35._o 3._o their_o be_v that_o body_n that_o own_v and_o adhere_v to_o the_o definition_n and_o decree_n of_o all_o the_o
former_a council_n such_o as_o the_o church_n of_o precede_a age_n have_v receive_v as_o general_n or_o oblige_v as_o well_o those_o council_n since_o as_o those_o before_o the_o six_o or_o seven_o century_n which_o late_a the_o other_o party_n reject_v §_o 37._o chap._n 5._o the_o pretend_a security_n of_o those_o protestant_n who_o deny_v any_o certain_a live_a or_o personal_a guide_n infallible_a in_o necessary_n affirm_v 1._o that_o all_o necessary_a matter_n of_o faith_n be_v even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a clear_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o controversy_n in_o non-necessaries_a needless_a to_o be_v decide_v §_o 38._o 2._o that_o all_o necessary_n be_v clear_a in_o scripture_n because_o god_n have_v leave_v no_o other_o certain_a mean_n rule_n or_o guide_n for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o save_o the_o scripture_n §_o 39_o n._n 1._o not_o any_o certain_a live_a guide_n 1._o which_o be_v infallible_a as_o their_o guide_n the_o scripture_n be_v §_o 39_o n._n 2._o 2._o which_o the_o unlearned_a in_o any_o division_n can_v discern_v from_o the_o false_a guide_n or_o know_v their_o decree_n better_o than_o the_o scripture_n 3._o from_o who_o the_o scripture_n direct_v they_o to_o learn_v necessary_n or_o tell_v they_o what_o church_n or_o party_n they_o be_v to_o adhere_v to_o in_o any_o schism_n make_v in_o which_o infallible_a guide_n if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o as_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o the_o great_a concernment_n the_o scripture_n will_v not_o have_v be_v silent_a ibid._n reply_n 1._o that_o evidence_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v be_v the_o usual_a plea_n of_o former_a heretic_n in_o their_o dissent_v from_o the_o church_n §_o 40._o n._n 1._o 2._o that_o as_o to_o the_o main_a and_o principal_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o deny_v by_o roman_a catholic_n but_o only_o the_o clearness_n thereof_o as_o to_o all_o man_n capacity_n question_v and_o another_o guide_n hold_v necessary_a §_o 40._o n._n 2._o it_o be_v reply_v then_o 1._o concern_v the_o clearness_n of_o scripture_n 1_o that_o some_o controversy_n in_o religion_n since_o the_o write_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v be_v concern_v point_n necessary_a as_o those_o controversy_n concern_v the_o trinity_n the_o deity_n and_o humanity_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o necessity_n of_o god_n grace_n etc._n etc._n §_o 41._o 2._o that_o the_o more_o clear_a all_o necessary_n be_v in_o scripture_n still_o with_o the_o more_o security_n may_v christian_n rely_v for_o they_o on_o the_o church_n judgement_n from_o which_o also_o they_o receive_v these_o scripture_n §_o 42._o 3._o that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n that_o all_o necessary_n shall_v be_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n as_o to_o all_o man_n clear_o 1._o because_o it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o god_n have_v leave_v this_o one_o point_n clear_a in_o scripture_n that_o we_o shall_v in_o all_o difficulty_n and_o obscurity_n of_o they_o follow_v the_o direction_n and_o adhere_v to_o the_o exposition_n and_o doctrine_n of_o these_o guide_n §_o 43._o 2._o sufficient_a if_o god_n have_v by_o other_o apostolical_a tradition_n at_o least_o clear_o reveal_v to_o these_o church-guide_n all_o such_o necessary_a truth_n to_o be_v successive_o communicate_v by_o they_o to_o his_o people_n §_o 44._o 3._o sufficient_a if_o god_n have_v by_o tradition_n at_o least_o clear_o reveal_v to_o these_o church-guide_n the_o sense_n of_o such_o scripture_n as_o be_v in_o point_n necessary_a any_o way_n obscure_a ibid._n 4._o sufficient_a if_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n have_v clear_o enough_o reveal_v all_o necessary_a truth_n to_o the_o capacity_n of_o these_o church-guide_n use_v due_a mean_n though_o he_o have_v not_o to_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o unlearned_a for_o from_o those_o these_o may_v learn_v they_o §_o 45._o ii_o concern_v a_o live_a guide_n 1._o that_o where_o the_o scripture_n especial_o several_a text_n compare_v be_v ambiguous_a and_o in_o controversy_n the_o christian_n guide_n to_o know_v the_o true_a sense_n can_v be_v the_o scripture_n but_o either_o the_o church_n or_o their_o own_o judgement_n §_o 46._o n._n 1._o 2._o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n shall_v direct_v christian_n to_o what_o guide_n they_o be_v to_o repair_v §_o 46._o n._n 2._o or_o to_o what_o church_n prelate_n or_o party_n in_o any_o schism_n christian_n for_o ever_o ought_v to_o adhere_v §_o 47._o n._n 2._o 3._o yet_o that_o god_n have_v give_v christian_n a_o sufficient_a direction_n herein_o in_o his_o leave_v a_o due_a subordination_n among_o these_o governor_n whereby_o the_o inferior_n be_v subject_v to_o the_o superior_a and_o a_o par●_n unto_o the_o whole_a §_o 47._o n._n 3._o and_o that_o christian_n may_v more_o clear_o know_v the_o sense_n of_o their_o definition_n in_o matter_n controvert_v than_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n §_o 48._o the_o three_o discourse_n examine_v what_o measure_n of_o obedience_n be_v due_a to_o these_o guide_n and_o to_o the_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a judge_n of_o controversy_n the_o content_n chap._n 1._o roman_n catholic_n and_o protestant_n do_v agree_v 1._o that_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o those_o book_n by_o the_o protestant_n style_v canonical_a be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n §_o 1._o 2._o that_o in_o these_o scripture_n agree_v on_o it_o be_v clear_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n catholic_n of_o no_o age_n shall_v err_v in_o necessary_n §_o 2._o 3._o that_o the_o church_n catholic_n be_v contradistinct_a to_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a church_n §_o 4._o 4._o that_o christ_n have_v leave_v in_o his_o church_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n to_o keep_v it_o from_o be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n §_o 5._o chap._n 2._o catholic_n go_v on_o and_o affirm_v 5._o that_o the_o church_n guide_v at_o least_o assemble_v in_o lawful_a general_n council_n shall_v never_o err_v in_o their_o determine_a thing_n of_o necessary_a faith_n §_o 6._o 6._o shall_v never_o err_v in_o necessary_n not_o take_v for_o those_o that_o be_v absolute_o require_v but_o for_o all_o that_o be_v very_o beneficial_a to_o salvation_n §_o 9_o 7._o shall_v never_o err_v in_o they_o not_o as_o infalliblly_v inspire_v to_o teach_v any_o new_a but_o as_o divine_o assist_v in_o deliver_v of_o the_o former_a revelation_n and_o tradition_n wherein_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n of_o all_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n be_v for_o ever_o preserve_v equal_o infallible_a §_o 10._o 8._o that_o for_o know_v what_o or_o how_o many_o of_o former_a council_n have_v be_v lawful_o general_n and_o oblige_v a_o christian_a may_v safe_o rely_v on_o the_o general_n judgement_n of_o the_o church_n since_o the_o sit_v of_o such_o council_n §_o 11._o 9_o that_o in_o the_o absence_n of_o a_o considerable_a part_n of_o the_o church-governor_n from_o some_o council_n yet_o their_o acceptance_n of_o its_o decree_n or_o concurrence_n with_o its_o doctrine_n render_v it_o equivalent_a to_o a_o council_n general_n §_o 13._o 10._o that_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n part_n of_o the_o whole_a be_v oblige_v to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n and_o yield_v their_o assent_n to_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o whole_a §_o 14._o chap._n 3_o 11._o that_o whatever_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n hold_v the_o contrary_a to_o any_o know_a definition_n pass_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n of_o any_o lawful_a general_n council_n be_v heretical_a §_o 16._o 12._o that_o any_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n which_o for_o any_o cause_n whatever_o do_v actual_o relinquish_v and_o separate_v from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o present_a church_n catholic_n be_v schismatical_a §_o 20._o 13._o but_o yet_o that_o several_a person_n or_o church_n coordinate_a may_v without_o schism_n differ_v in_o any_o thing_n opinion_n or_o practice_v wherein_o they_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o accord_v by_o their_o common_a superior_n or_o by_o the_o whole_a §_o 23._o chap._n 4._o but_o protestant_n after_o the_o four_o first_o proposition_n concede_v in_o some_o sense_n do_v thus_o endeavour_v to_o qualify_v and_o restrain_v they_o 5._o in_o grant_v the_o catholic_n church_n in_o all_o age_n unerrable_a in_o necessary_n they_o understand_v only_o such_o few_o necessary_n without_o the_o explicit_a belief_n of_o which_o salvation_n can_v be_v attain_v §_o 24._o 6._o therefore_o also_o they_o affirm_v that_o though_o the_o church_n catholic_n can_v err_v in_o such_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n yet_o it_o or_o all_o particular_a church_n in_o some_o one_o age_n or_o age_n may_v in_o other_o the_o error_n wherein_o be_v dangerous_a to_o salvation_n gross_a damnable_a etc._n etc._n §_o 25._o because_o it_o appear_v that_o many_o of_o the_o chief_a point_n from_o which_o protestant_n dissent_v be_v general_a tenant_n and_o practice_n
14.16_o 26._o 16.15_o compare_v with_o act_n 15.28_o joh._n 5.20_o 27._o 1_o cor._n 12.7_o 8._o his_o promise_v they_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i._n e._n a_o assista_n that_o shall_v abide_v with_o they_o for_o ever_o to_o teach_v they_o all_o thing_n and_o to_o bring_v all_o thing_n to_o their_o remembrance_n for_o ever_o i._n e._n not_o with_o the_o apostle_n only_o for_o then_o what_o will_v become_v of_o the_o nation_n that_o after_o their_o time_n be_v still_o to_o be_v instruct_v especial_o when_o any_o controversy_n shall_v arise_v concern_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o apostle_n write_n which_o write_n be_v miss-understandable_a in_o thing_n necessary_a and_o which_o s._n peter_n say_v in_o his_o time_n the_o unlearned_a wrest_v to_o their_o own_o destruction_n 3.16_o destruction_n 2_o pet._n 3.16_o but_o with_o their_o successor_n also_o *_o see_v mat._n 18.20_o compare_v with_o 17_o 18._o his_o promise_a that_o when_o they_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o his_o name_n to_o hear_v the_o cause_n bring_v to_o the_o church_n bring_v to_o she_o still_o daily_a notwithstanding_o the_o scripture_n he_o himself_o will_v be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o and_o will_v ratify_v in_o heaven_n what_o they_o shall_v upon_o earth_n which_o impli_v also_o that_o he_o will_v assist_v they_o on_o earth_n at_o least_o when_o this_o be_v a_o supreme_a and_o unappealable_a church-authority_n to_o do_v as_o to_o the_o main_a both_o what_o be_v meet_v to_o be_v submit_v to_o by_o those_o who_o he_o send_v to_o their_o tribunal_n and_o what_o be_v meet_v to_o be_v ratify_v by_o the_o heavenly_a tribunal_n but_o if_o after_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n the_o necessity_n of_o such_o tribunal_n cease_v why_o be_v these_o afterward_o continue_v and_z in_o controversy_n of_o faith_n appeal_v repair_v to_o *_o see_v mat._n 16.18_o 19_o his_o promise_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o those_o to_o who_o he_o give_v the_o key_n i._n e._n against_o the_o clergy_n nor_o against_o the_o church_n build_v by_o and_o upon_o they_o and_o *_o see_v luk._n 23.31_o the_o not_o fail_v of_o s._n peter_n faith_n pray_v for_o by_o our_o lord_n in_o order_n to_o establish_v his_o brethren_n *_o see_v 1_o tim._n 3.15_o the_o church_n unlimited_a to_o the_o apostle_n day_n say_v to_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n sure_o this_o from_o its_o teacher_n be_v so_o for_o so_o the_o apostle_n elsewhere_o use_v the_o same_o metaphor_n frequent_o call_v these_o teacher_n gal._n 2.9_o pillar_n eph._n 2.20_o foundation_n and_o ground_n among_o which_o teacher_n timothy_n be_v admit_v be_v warn_v here_o to_o be_v very_o circumspect_a and_o careful_a of_o his_o behaviour_n and_o *_o see_v 2_o tim._n 2.19_o compare_v with_o 16_o 17_o 20._o the_o foundation_n of_o god_n the_o church_n stand_v sure_a notwithstanding_o that_o hymeneus_n and_o some_o other_o as_o vessel_n in_o this_o great_a house_n of_o god_n not_o of_o gold_n and_o honour_n but_o of_o earth_n add_v dishonour_n have_v err_v from_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n *_o see_v eph._n 4.11_o 13._o his_o give_v these_o teacher_n that_o the_o world_n shall_v not_o be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n in_o who_o doctrine_n therefore_o in_o order_n to_o this_o end_n this_o donor_n have_v fix_v some_o stability_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v apply_v only_o to_o the_o apostle_n or_o their_o time_n see_v that_o the_o experience_n of_o so_o many_o various_a wind_n of_o doctrine_n even_o since_o all_o their_o write_n and_o concern_v the_o sense_n of_o their_o write_n see_v 2_o pet._n 3.16_o blow_v in_o the_o church_n and_o carry_v the_o unstable_a to_o and_o fro_o argue_v the_o same_o necessity_n of_o such_o doctor_n still_o and_o *_o see_v rev._n 1.13_o 16._o where_o our_o saviour_n to_o denote_v his_o perpetual_a presence_n to_o these_o succeed_a teacher_n and_o governor_n of_o his_o church_n after_o all_o the_o time_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n save_v st._n john_n be_v describe_v though_o in_o glory_n yet_o walk_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o seven_o mother-churche_n of_o asia_n and_o hold_v their_o bishop_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o therefore_o he_o have_v command_v a_o obedience_n to_o these_o governor_n proportionable_a to_o his_o assistance_n that_o those_o who_o will_v not_o hear_v they_o shall_v be_v reckon_v as_o heathen_n or_o publican_n he_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o their_o assembly_n and_o ratify_v in_o heaven_n what_o their_o sentence_n bind_v or_o lose_v on_o earth_n *_o see_v mat._n 18.17_o 18_o 20._o and_o have_v say_v concern_v they_o 10.16_o they_o luke_n 10.16_o that_o he_o that_o hear_v they_o hear_v he_o from_o which_o may_v be_v gather_v that_o that_o clergy_n who_o have_v still_o the_o same_o mission_n from_o he_o may_v require_v the_o same_o audience_n in_o his_o stead_n chap._n ii_o several_a limitation_n of_o protestant_n concern_v these_o promise_n 1._o that_o they_o be_v make_v only_o to_o the_o apostle_n §_o 8._o 2._o or_o make_v to_o all_o the_o succeed_a church-guide_n but_o conditional_a §_o 12._o r._n that_o our_o lord_n promise_n of_o indeficiency_n in_o necessary_n be_v not_o make_v to_o the_o apostle_n only_o but_o to_o their_o successor_n §_o 9_o and_o to_o their_o successor_n not_o conditional_a but_o absolute_a §_o 14._o and_o that_o this_o indeficiency_n in_o necessary_n be_v most_o rational_o place_v by_o the_o church_n §_o 8_o in_o her_o general_n council_n or_o such_o accord_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n as_o be_v equivalent_a to_o such_o council_n §_o 15._o in_o answer_n to_o these_o text_n some_o of_o the_o reform_a apostle_n reform_a chillingw_n p._n 92._o 115._o 19_o stillingf_n p._n 256_o 2_o 8_o 259_o 519._o several_a limitation_n of_o protestant_n concern_v these_o promise_n 1._o that_o they_o be_v make_v only_o to_o the_o apostle_n will_v restrain_v these_o absolute_a promise_n only_o to_o the_o apostle_n or_o first_o promulgator_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o this_o reason_n because_o no_o need_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v extend_v to_o any_o more_o for_o by_o these_o first_o for_o all_o succeed_a time_n be_v a_o write_a rule_n leave_v clear_a and_o plain_a even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a and_o to_o all_o that_o use_v common_a reason_n in_o all_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o that_o all_o controversy_n which_o these_o plain_a and_o clear_a scripture_n intelligible_a to_o every_o one_o decide_v not_o be_v not_o controversy_n in_o any_o point_n necessary_a and_o need_v not_o to_o be_v decide_v nor_o do_v christian_n now_o have_v a_o infallible_a and_o plain_a rule_n for_o necessary_n need_v afterward_o beside_o this_o another_o live_n unerrable_a guide_n in_o they_o but_o such_o a_o answer_n 1_o seem_v neither_o any_o way_n sufficient_a to_o satisfy_v the_o text_n as_o have_v be_v partly_o show_v already_o in_o the_o explication_n of_o they_o §_o 9_o which_o do_v promise_n to_o the_o world_n end_n not_o a_o rule_n only_o but_o person_n 1._o reply_n 1._o send_v to_o preserve_v we_o from_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n and_o which_o command_n obedience_n not_o to_o a_o rule_n only_o but_o to_o person_n expound_v it_o under_o pain_n of_o be_v eject_v as_o heathen_n and_o publican_n and_o under_o pain_n of_o be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n when_o they_o bound_v we_o upon_o earth_n a_o authority_n exercise_v not_o only_o by_o the_o apostle_n but_o upon_o the_o strength_n of_o these_o and_o the_o like_a text_n extend_v beyond_o the_o former_a limitation_n by_o their_o successor_n also_o only_a this_o order_n be_v require_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o our_o obedience_n that_o we_o perform_v it_o in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o the_o supreme_a church-authority_n and_o then_o also_o to_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n only_o as_o they_o be_v conformable_a to_o and_o unite_v with_o the_o whole_a who_o otherwise_o as_o experience_n show_v may_v err_v even_o in_o fundamental_o and_o so_o our_o obedience_n to_o they_o ruin_v we_o nor_o 2_o seem_v such_o answer_n sufficient_a to_o satisfy_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n follow_v the_o apostle_n wherein_o §_o 10_o whether_o there_o have_v not_o rise_v controversy_n notwithstanding_o the_o clearness_n of_o the_o rule_n leave_v we_o some_o of_o which_o have_v be_v in_o matter_n necessary_a and_o wherein_o the_o people_n great_o need_v the_o direction_n of_o their_o spiritual_a guide_n i_o leave_v to_o your_o judgement_n if_o you_o please_v to_o reflect_v on_o either_o the_o old_a arrian_n nestorian_a pelagian_a or_o the_o new_a socinian_n solifidian_n church-anarchical_a both_o anti-episcopal_a and_o also_o anti-presbyteral_a error_n all_o maintain_v by_o such_o who_o have_v presume_v as_o much_o as_o any_o that_o they_o have_v common_a reason_n to_o understand_v plain_a scripture_n nay_o who_o account_v these_o so_o clear_a
small_a so_o be_v learn_v there_o by_o reason_n of_o extreme_a poverty_n very_o much_o decay_v 285._o decay_v see_v roger._n recollect_v terr_n saint_n 2_o l._n tract_n 4_o 5._o thomas_z à_fw-fr jesus_n dé_v conv_o gent._n 6_o l._n p_o 285._o so_o that_o he_o must_v now_o adhere_v to_o the_o western_a who_o will_v adhere_v either_o to_o the_o major_a part_n of_o christianity_n or_o to_o the_o learned_a and_o it_o seem_v a_o great_a tergiversation_n and_o distrust_n in_o their_o cause_n for_o any_o person_n or_o church_n of_o this_o western-flourishing_a body_n to_o fly_v and_o retire_v to_o such_o remote_a confederate_n some_o of_o they_o almost_o our_o antipode_n and_o to_o decline_v the_o judgement_n that_o be_v easy_o have_v of_o the_o same_o western-body_n which_o have_v a_o conclusive_a authority_n in_o respect_n of_o any_o part_n thereof_o for_o controversy_n arise_v within_o this_o patriarchat_n and_o which_o be_v always_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o presidency_n of_o s._n peter_n chair_n the_o most_o dignify_a part_n of_o christendom_n and_o be_v the_o most_o free_a at_o this_o present_a time_n in_o their_o exercise_n of_o religion_n the_o most_o unmolested_a in_o their_o government_n and_o discipline_n the_o most_o flourish_a in_o learning_n and_o record_n of_o antiquity_n and_o last_o which_o by_o their_o numerous_a clergy_n and_o populacy_n and_o the_o extent_n also_o of_o several_a member_n of_o their_o body_n into_o all_o those_o part_n where_o these_o other_o church_n reside_v do_v seem_v by_o much_o the_o great_a part_n of_o christianity_n 4._o but_o 4_o how_o numerous_a soever_o these_o eastern_a christian_n be_v or_o how_o good_a their_o title_n to_o give_v their_o suffrage_n in_o council_n yet_o 7._o §._o 36._o n._n 7._o there_o seem_v no_o great_a advantage_n that_o can_v arise_v to_o the_o protestant-party_n hence_o all_o these_o church_n in_o their_o public_a liturgy_n doctrine_n and_o rite_n as_o to_o the_o protestant-controversy_n much_o what_o agree_v with_o the_o greek_a church_n etc._n church_n see_v 3_o disc_n §._o 158._o etc._n etc._n 177_o etc._n etc._n and_o this_o again_o with_o the_o roman_a 5._o last_o this_o consent_n and_o agreement_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o other_o eastern_a church_n or_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o with_o the_o roman_a in_o the_o forename_a controversy_n appear_v in_o their_o liturgy_n write_n common_a practice_n and_o these_o not_o borrow_v from_o the_o west_n between_o which_o and_o they_o there_o be_v know_v to_o have_v be_v for_o many_o age_n no_o great_a friendship_n seem_v sufficient_a to_o render_v the_o occidental_a council_n wherein_o these_o point_n have_v be_v decide_v either_o general_n or_o equivalent_a thereto_o without_o those_o letter_n or_o message_n which_o the_o bishop_n require_v as_o necessary_a from_o these_o church_n which_o letter_n depend_v on_o the_o assemble_v of_o some_o inferior_a synod_n diocesan_n or_o provincial_a among_o they_o a_o thing_n in_o so_o great_a a_o desolation_n not_o to_o be_v expect_v yet_o before_o the_o turk_n last_o conquest_n in_o some_o of_o these_o western_a council_n that_o have_v determine_v some_o of_o these_o point_n there_o have_v be_v a_o considerable_a representative_a of_o the_o eastern_a church_n as_o in_o the_o great_a lateran_n council_n under_o innocent_a and_o in_o the_o florentine_a so_o then_o stand_v the_o case_n with_o the_o bishop_n and_o other_o protestant_n that_o yield_v submission_n to_o general_n council_n they_o can_v right_o on_o this_o account_n withdraw_v it_o from_o several_a council_n that_o have_v be_v assemble_v in_o the_o west_n in_o late_a age_n 3._o but_o next_o this_o bishop_n profess_v himself_o to_o submit_v also_o to_o the_o sentence_n of_o a_o occidental_a council_n 8._o §._o 36._o n._n 8._o if_o a_o free_a one_o so_o that_o we_o need_v not_o further_o trouble_v ourselves_o to_o inquire_v after_o a_o more_o general_n occidental_a general_n 3._o of_o council_n occidental_a but_o search_v if_o any_o such_o free_a occidental_a council_n have_v define_v all_o or_o any_o of_o the_o present_a controversy_n which_o council_n he_o oblige_v the_o protestant_a church_n to_o acquiesce_v in_o and_o that_o with_o good_a reason_n for_o the_o same_o authority_n have_v a_o patriarchal_a council_n over_o the_o national_a church_n and_o synod_n of_o the_o west_n as_o these_o claim_n over_o provincial_n or_o diocesan_n the_o authority_n of_o which_o national_a synod_n see_v establish_v in_o the_o synod_n under_o king_n james_n 1603._o can._n 139_o 140._o and_o the_o same_o authority_n of_o patriarchal_a grant_v by_o dr._n field_n and_o other_o disc_n 2._o §_o 24._o now_o occidental_a council_n there_o have_v be_v many_o several_a of_o they_o before_o luther_n day_n one_o since_o that_o have_v decree_v and_o give_v their_o sentence_n in_o several_a if_o not_o all_o of_o those_o point_n of_o controversy_n of_o which_o yet_o the_o protestant_n do_v still_o from_o a_o free_a occidental_a council_n seek_v resolution_n 2._o resolution_n see_v below_o §_o 50._o n._n 2._o the_o enquiry_n than_o remain_v concern_v their_o freedom_n where_o also_o i_o suppose_v no_o great_a freedom_n need_v be_v prove_v than_o as_o to_o the_o particular_a controversy_n define_v against_o protestant_n for_o a_o council_n to_o which_o some_o violence_n be_v offer_v in_o one_o thing_n which_o perhaps_o be_v by_o some_o potent_a person_n therein_o contend_v for_o yet_o may_v be_v leave_v altogether_o free_a as_o to_o many_o other_o thing_n wherein_o none_o have_v any_o particular_a or_o all_o a_o equal_a interest_n 1_o then_o if_o we_o inquire_v into_o the_o western_a council_n before_o luther_n that_o of_o franckfort_n mistake_v being_n remove_v concern_v which_o see_v mr._n thorndikes_n 363._o thorndikes_n epilog_n l._n 3._o p._n 363._o concession_n the_o great_a lateran_n council_n and_o those_o five_o precede_v it_o that_o define_v a_o substantial_a conversion_n in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o council_n of_o constance_n 57_o constance_n of_o idolatry_n §_o 57_o and_o that_o of_o florence_n i_o find_v nothing_o object_v against_o their_o freedom_n nor_o any_o antifaction_n then_o in_o the_o church_n as_o to_o the_o point_n we_o speak_v of_o against_o who_o there_o be_v any_o need_n to_o procure_v in_o the_o council_n a_o strong_a part_n or_o to_o over-awe_n any_o one_o liberty_n nor_o see_v i_o any_o necessity_n of_o force_n to_o be_v use_v upon_o the_o father_n for_o vote_v those_o thing_n lawful_a which_o be_v their_o daily_a practice_n or_o for_o vote_v such_o a_o thing_n a_o truth_n in_o their_o meeting_n as_o that_o of_o a_o substantial_a conversion_n in_o the_o eucharist_n which_o before_o their_o convening_n though_o agitate_a much_o and_o contradict_v by_o some_o inferior_n yet_o not_o one_o bishop_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o those_o time_n oppose_v and_o if_o the_o paucity_n of_o the_o number_n of_o western_a bishop_n in_o some_o of_o these_o council_n shall_v be_v allege_v as_o a_o prejudice_n to_o they_o the_o general_a acceptation_n of_o they_o by_o those_o time_n make_v a_o sufficient_a amends_o for_o it_o next_o if_o we_o take_v into_o consideration_n the_o freedom_n of_o that_o of_o trent_n since_o luther_n time_n 9_o §._o 36._o n._n 9_o according_a to_o the_o particular_n require_v by_o the_o bishop_n 1._o bishop_n before_o §._o 35_o n._n 1._o there_o be_v four_o thing_n sufficient_a to_o remove_v our_o jealousy_n of_o any_o violence_n use_v for_o the_o define_v most_o of_o those_o point_n i_o will_v not_o say_v all_o to_o avoid_v some_o cavil_n controvert_v by_o protestant_n concern_v which_o only_a be_v our_o inquiry_n they_o 1_o be_v that_o however_o some_o of_o those_o point_n may_v be_v pretend_v to_o have_v be_v vote_v at_o first_o as_o it_o be_v surreptious_o by_o a_o very_a small_a body_n of_o bishop_n and_o many_o of_o those_o of_o one_o nation_n yet_o both_o a_o full_a body_n of_o bishop_n afterward_o in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o council_n unanimous_o agree_v ratify_v these_o and_o the_o general_n body_n of_o the_o absent_a prelace_n of_o all_o the_o western_a church_n except_a protestant_n and_o those_o of_o france_n among_o the_o rest_n accept_v they_o the_o 2_o that_o soave_fw-it no_o friend_n to_o this_o council_n yet_o testify_v that_o as_o to_o the_o protestant_n or_o lutheran_n controversy_n the_o vote_n of_o the_o father_n of_o that_o council_n be_v very_o unanimous_a without_o any_o cloak-bag_n expect_v from_o rome_n without_o any_o dispute_n or_o contract_n either_o between_o themselves_o or_o with_o the_o pope_n though_o about_o some_o other_o point_n there_o be_v much_o see_v soave_fw-it p._n 230._o where_o speak_v of_o the_o council_n use_v ambiguity_n of_o expression_n in_o some_o matter_n wherein_o be_v some_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n among_o the_o father_n so_o to_o satisfy_v all_o but_o say_v he_o that_o which_o have_v be_v relate_v in_o this_o particular_a &_o perhaps_o do_v happen_v in_o
many_o matter_n occur_v not_o in_o condemn_v the_o lutheran_n opinion_n where_o all_o do_v agree_v with_o a_o exquisite_a unity_n and_o see_v he_o p._n 324_o 326._o concern_v the_o father_n unanimous_a vote_n of_o the_o 2._o and_o 6._o canon_n of_o the_o 13._o sess_n touch_v transubstantiation_n and_o adoration_n see_v p._n 799._o 803_o their_o general_n agreement_n and_o consent_n touch_v purgatory_n invocation_n of_o saint_n veneration_n of_o image_n p._n 544_o 554_o 738._o '_o touch_v the_o mass_n its_o be_v a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n p._n 324_o 325_o 519._o touch_v the_o lawfulness_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o communicate_v only_o in_o one_o kind_n p._n 348._o touch_v the_o necessity_n of_o sacramental_a confession_n for_o mortal_a sin_n p._n 783_o 747_o 678_o 679._o '_o touch_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o vow_n of_o continency_n a_o universal_a capacity_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o chastity_n and_o injunction_n of_o priest_n celibacy_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o add_v more_o the_o 3d_o that_o without_o such_o a_o testimony_n if_o any_o consider_v that_o the_o thing_n define_v 10._o §._o 36._o n._n 10._o of_o which_o here_o be_v question_n be_v most_o of_o they_o common_a practice_n then_o use_v by_o all_o these_o prelate_n before_o they_o be_v assemble_v in_o trent_n in_o their_o several_a diocese_n and_o so_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n former_o and_o that_o the_o question_n in_o the_o council_n to_o be_v decide_v be_v whether_o such_o practice_n lawful_a as_o for_o instance_n whether_o communion_n only_o in_o one_o kind_a sufficient_a and_o lawful_a whether_o adoration_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o eucharist_n as_o corporal_o present_a lawful_a whether_o offering_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n corporal_o present_a for_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a lawful_a whether_o a_o relative-veneration_n of_o image_n prayer_n to_o saint_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a as_o betterable_a thereby_o in_o their_o present_a condition_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v lawful_a i_o omit_v the_o speculative_a controversy_n concern_v justification_n faith_n work_n merit_n work_v of_o supererogation_n grace_n and_o freewill_n certainty_n of_o salvation_n now_o by_o the_o moderate_a as_o it_o be_v compound_v and_o lay_v aside_o the_o catholick-doctrine_n be_v of_o late_a better_o understand_v by_o the_o reform_a whether_o the_o three_o monastic_a vow_n as_o also_o the_o injunction_n of_o celibacy_n to_o the_o priest_n lawful_a whether_o sacramental_a confession_n to_o the_o priest_n by_o those_o fall_n into_o mortal_a sin_n after_o their_o regeneration_n not_o only_o lawful_a but_o necessary_a i_o say_v see_v that_o the_o question_n in_o the_o council_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o new_a lutheran_n doctrine_n be_v whether_o these_o thing_n lawful_a which_o be_v then_o and_o in_o many_o former_a generation_n daily_o practise_v protestant_n not_o deny_v it_o what_o need_v of_o force_n of_o new_a mandate_n from_o rome_n of_o hire_v suffrage_n create_v more_o titular_a bishop_n oath_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v only_o of_o canonical_a obedience_n 21._o obedience_n see_v bell._n the_o council_n 1._o l._n 21._o and_o this_o oath_n administer_v at_o their_o consecration_n without_o any_o relation_n to_o the_o council_n to_o procure_v a_o prevalent_a vote_n or_o that_o the_o prelate_n shall_v in_o the_o council_n establish_v those_o thing_n several_a of_o which_o be_v find_v in_o their_o missal_n and_o breviaries_n as_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n adoration_n of_o christ_n corporal_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n invocation_n of_o saint_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o sense_n abovenamed_a but_o yet_o if_o these_o father_n of_o the_o council_n decide_v these_o thing_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n by_o compulsion_n how_o come_v the_o many_o more_o absent_a father_n of_o the_o western_a church_n and_o of_o france_n with_o the_o rest_n so_o free_o and_o voluntary_o to_o accept_v they_o but_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o though_o such_o thing_n be_v general_o believe_v and_o practise_v before_o yet_o now_o the_o father_n by_o art_n and_o violence_n be_v bring_v to_o advance_v they_o into_o matter_n of_o faith_n i_o ask_v concern_v many_o of_o these_o point_n what_o faith_n require_v save_v that_o they_o be_v lawful_a beneficial_a &_o c_o which_o lawfulness_n all_o those_o that_o practise_v they_o before_o who_o be_v the_o most_o if_o not_o all_o must_v also_o believe_v before_o or_o else_o practise_v they_o against_o conscience_n and_o which_o lawfulness_n protestant_n deny_v have_v by_o this_o fall_v under_o the_o condemnation_n of_o this_o council_n have_v it_o vote_v nothing_o more_o or_o beside_o it_o last_o what_o former_a council_n have_v there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n though_o never_o so_o free_a that_o for_o the_o matter_n call_v in_o question_n and_o decide_v in_o it_o have_v not_o in_o like_a manner_n require_v assent_v from_o the_o church_n subject_n to_o their_o definition_n the_o four_o that_o though_o the_o protestant_a bishop_n trespass_v in_o some_o point_n of_o their_o reformation_n 11._o §._o 36._o n._n 11._o against_o former_a free_a occidental_a council_n of_o which_o see_v below_o §_o 50._o n._n 2._o therefore_o either_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o heresy_n or_o of_o schism_n forfeit_v their_o right_n need_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v into_o this_o council_n yet_o have_v they_o be_v receive_v and_o that_o not_o only_o to_o plead_v their_o cause_n but_o also_o to_o a_o decisive_a vote_n in_o the_o council_n yet_o the_o small_a number_n of_o they_o some_o protestant_n church_n also_o have_v no_o bishop_n have_v be_v inconsiderable_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o rest_n and_o so_o the_o determination_n of_o thing_n will_v still_o have_v go_v the_o same_o way_n and_o indeed_o they_o be_v admit_v to_o plead_v their_o cause_n both_o by_o a_o safe_a conduct_n grant_v and_o when_o they_o come_v no_o violence_n offer_v but_o i_o can_v say_v on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o no_o violence_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o council_n and_o that_o within_o three_o week_n after_o their_o come_n by_o the_o very_a prince_n that_o send_v they_o who_o on_o a_o sudden_a appear_v in_o arm_n against_o the_o emperor_n and_o by_o their_o near_a approach_n disperse_v this_o assembly_n at_o trent_n after_o they_o have_v secret_o withdraw_v from_o thence_o their_o divine_n but_o have_v their_o come_n be_v serious_a and_o their_o stay_n long_o what_o can_v they_o have_v say_v here_o that_o they_o have_v not_o former_o write_v and_o that_o the_o council_n in_o these_o write_n have_v not_o peruse_v or_o by_o what_o art_n can_v they_o have_v dissuade_v as_o they_o desire_v 642._o desire_v soave_fw-it p._n 642._o this_o venerable_a assembly_n from_o take_v for_o their_o rule_n and_o guide_n in_o the_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n the_o apostolical_a tradition_n former_a council_n and_o father_n by_o which_o they_o be_v cast_v further_o suppose_v all_o thing_n have_v be_v regulate_v in_o this_o council_n not_o by_o personal_a consent_n but_o by_o the_o equal_a vote_n of_o the_o western_a nation_n though_o this_o be_v contrary_n to_o the_o usual_a manner_n and_o never_o practise_v save_v only_o in_o two_o late_a council_n after_o anno_fw-la dom._n 1400._o constance_n and_o basil_n and_o liable_a to_o many_o inconvenience_n of_o which_o see_v consideration_n on_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n §_o 72._o yet_o if_o these_o vote_n be_v true_o adjust_v and_o proportion_v according_a to_o the_o several_a magnitude_n of_o the_o country_n and_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o bishop_n in_o they_o the_o protestant_n also_o will_v by_o this_o way_n have_v be_v as_o much_o over-numbred_n and_o overbear_v which_o they_o well_o see_v and_o therefore_o never_o motion_v it_o ‖_o but_o motion_v this_o that_o after_o their_o party_n first_o allow_v with_o the_o rest_n a_o decisive_a vote_n 642._o soave_fw-it p._n 642._o yet_o the_o decision_n in_o the_o council_n shall_v not_o be_v make_v by_o plurality_n of_o voice_n but_o that_o the_o more_o sound_a opinion_n shall_v be_v prefer_v i._n e._n those_o opinion_n that_o be_v regulate_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o be_v soave_n word_n ibid._n word_n ibid._n not_o i_o and_o motion_v yet_o a_o second_o thing_n ibid_fw-la thing_n soave_fw-it ibid_fw-la that_o if_o a_o concord_n in_o religion_n can_v not_o be_v conclude_v in_o the_o council_n than_o the_o condition_n of_o passau_n and_o ausburge_n may_v remain_v inviolable_a now_o these_o be_v a_o toleration_n of_o all_o sect_n that_o every_o one_o may_v follow_v what_o religion_n please_v he_o best_o see_v soave_fw-it 378_o 393._o and_o after_o this_o motion_v a_o three_o 369._o three_o see_v soave_fw-it p._n 369._o that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o whole_a western_a clergy_n be_v now_o divide_v into_o plaintiff_n the_o protestant_n clergy_n and_o defendant_n the_o catholic_n clergy_n and_o it_o not_o
a_o manifold_a idolatry_n in_o her_o worship_v the_o eucharistical_a bread_n the_o relic_n and_o image_n of_o saint_n and_o make_v prayer_n to_o they_o be_v they_o not_o the_o same_o in_o the_o church_n before_o luther_n and_o the_o same_o their_o effect_n or_o if_o the_o same_o error_n then_o light_n be_v now_o become_v grievous_a upon_o what_o account_n be_v it_o upon_o a_o more_o evident_a conviction_n christian_n may_v have_v now_o than_o heretofore_o that_o such_o be_v error_n but_o what_o ground_n can_v we_o have_v to_o say_v that_o they_o now_o culpable_o and_o convincible_o err_v in_o these_o who_o no_o more_o than_o those_o before_o luther_n can_v be_v accuse_v for_o hold_v any_o error_n save_o such_o as_o be_v the_o public_a faith_n of_o the_o church_n now_o authorize_v as_o much_o as_o that_o before_o luther_n and_o who_o to_o preserve_v themselves_o from_o err_v make_v use_n of_o the_o secure_a way_n that_o reason_n can_v imagine_v or_o that_o christian_n be_v prescribe_v whilst_o for_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n controvert_v in_o such_o point_n they_o choose_v not_o to_o rely_v on_o their_o own_o judgement_n but_o on_o that_o of_o the_o supreme_a guide_n of_o the_o church_n and_o judge_n of_o divine_a truth_n that_o be_v afford_v they_o here_o on_o earth_n and_o so_o if_o they_o err_v yet_o take_v the_o wise_a course_n to_o miss_v err_v that_o religion_n or_o reason_n can_v dictate_v to_o which_o guide_v also_o all_o the_o subject_n of_o this_o former_a communion_n believe_v submission_n of_o their_o private_a judgement_n to_o be_v due_a and_o to_o be_v command_v which_o be_v a_o very_a plausible_a one_o if_o a_o error_n from_o whence_o also_o it_o follow_v that_o till_o they_o be_v convince_v of_o error_n in_o this_o one_o point_n of_o submission_n not_o to_o be_v due_a they_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o be_v convince_v in_o any_o other_o where_o it_o be_v require_v nay_o yet_o further_o to_o the_o obedience_n of_o which_o guide_n at_o least_o for_o silence_n and_o noncontradiction_n they_o be_v oblige_v even_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o learned_a protestant_n 44._o protestant_n see_v disc_n 3._o §_o 44._o wherever_o they_o can_v demonstrate_v the_o contrary_a which_o demonstration_n be_v a_o degree_n of_o conviction_n sure_o very_o few_o can_v pretend_v to_o §_o 52_o 1._o it_o be_v say_v indeed_o by_o protestant_n 5._o protestant_n stillingf_n p._n 330._o archbishop_z lawd_n §_o 21._o n._n 5._o that_o all_o particular_a church_n or_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n in_o some_o age_n or_o age_n may_v universal_o hold_v some_o tenent_n that_o be_v a_o error_n but_o then_o grant_v by_o they_o that_o any_o such_o universal_o hold_v error_n can_v never_o destroy_v the_o essence_n or_o be_v of_o the_o church_n catholic_n or_o render_v it_o non_fw-fr catholic_n because_o thus_o in_o such_o age_n the_o church_n catholic_n will_v fail_v now_o from_o this_o i_o collect_v my_o security_n ni_fw-fr hold_v any_o tenant_n though_o they_o shall_v happen_v to_o be_v error_n which_o be_v universal_o hold_v in_o the_o church_n before_o luther_n that_o as_o they_o destroy_v not_o the_o church_n its_o be_v still_o catholic_n so_o neither_o do_v they_o expel_v i_o from_o still_o continue_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_o hence_o for_o example_n i_o be_o secure_v that_o i_o be_o no_o idolater_n if_o not_o swerve_v from_o the_o church_n doctrine_n because_o the_o church_n whilst_o catholic_n as_o she_o be_v affirm_v to_o be_v be_v not_o such_o but_o in_o join_v with_o a_o church_n that_o pretend_v to_o reform_v hold_v the_o contradictory_n of_o these_o former_a universal_a tenant_n i_o be_o not_o here_o secure_a but_o that_o some_o of_o these_o tenant_n may_v be_v such_o error_n as_o exclude_v this_o new_a church_n from_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n and_o i_o if_o adhere_v to_o it_o from_o be_v a_o member_n thereof_o as_o the_o maintain_n by_o the_o arrian_n and_o other_o of_o some_o tenant_n contrary_a to_o the_o universal_a doctrine_n of_o the_o former_a church_n have_v separate_v they_o from_o the_o church_n catholic_n i_o say_v for_o any_o tenent_n i_o can_v show_v to_o have_v be_v spread_v over_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n at_o luther_n appearance_n i_o be_o secure_v by_o protestant_n that_o in_o hold_v this_o i_o be_o free_a from_o heresy_n or_o be_v render_v thereby_o extra-catholick_n but_o then_o i_o be_o not_o so_o in_o my_o enter_v into_o a_o new_a society_n that_o contradict_v this_o church_n and_o such_o tenant_n except_o in_o such_o point_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o which_o i_o be_o infallible_o certain_a 2._o again_o it_o be_v affirm_v by_o protestant_n ‖_o that_o a_o separation_n may_v be_v make_v without_o schism_n §_o 52_o from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o all_o particular_a church_n some_o of_o which_o or_o all_o which_o i_o say_v 59_o see_v stillingf_n p._n 331._o chillingw_n c._n 5._o §._o 52_o 55_o 56_o 59_o must_v be_v the_o catholic_n of_o some_o age_n for_o some_o point_n if_o hold_v and_o impose_v by_o they_o viz._n those_o point_n wherein_o the_o essence_n and_o union_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n consist_v not_o because_o in_o such_o the_o church_n catholic_n may_v err_v but_o can_v without_o schism_n for_o other_o point_n viz._n such_o as_o constitute_v the_o necessary_a faith_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n wherein_o she_o err_v not_o for_o so_o she_o will_v cease_v to_o be_v catholic_n now_o from_o hence_o also_o i_o gather_v that_o i_o continue_v in_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o all_o those_o particular_a church_n can_v never_o be_v non-catholick_n or_o guilty_a in_o concur_v in_o any_o schism_n for_o my_o hold_n and_o conform_v to_o any_o of_o the_o church_n universal_a tenant_n because_o none_o such_o can_v destroy_v the_o church_n from_o be_v catholic_n still_o ‖_o but_o in_o my_o separation_n from_o all_o these_o church_n impose_v such_o tenant_n i_o be_o not_o secure_a because_o some_o of_o these_o tenant_n as_o protestant_n grant_v may_v possible_o be_v such_o as_o be_v some_o part_n of_o the_o necessary_a catholic_n faith_n and_o so_o my_o separation_n if_o make_v on_o such_o account_n be_v schism_n §_o 54_o this_o security_n than_o they_o seem_v to_o enjoy_v who_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o unreformed_a it_o and_o danger_n to_o those_o desert_v it_o western_a or_o roman_a church_n before_o or_o since_o luther_n time_n they_o be_v acquit_v thereby_o from_o heresy_n and_o schism_n or_o any_o other_o error_n damnative_a to_o they_o who_o therein_o follow_v their_o spiritual_a guide_n not_o against_o conscience_n but_o the_o like_a i_o see_v not_o how_o any_o may_v promise_v to_o himself_o in_o live_v and_o die_v in_o a_o new-raised_a communion_n and_o in_o desert_v the_o former_a especial_o if_o desert_v it_o for_o any_o former_a general_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n thereof_o which_o if_o not_o enjoin_v he_o here_o leave_v to_o his_o free_a liberty_n have_v no_o reason_n for_o these_o to_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a but_o if_o enjoin_v ought_v in_o these_o to_o submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a especial_o so_o many_o as_o can_v demonstrate_v against_o it_o 20._o it_o see_v 2_o disc_n §._o 20._o to_o submit_v at_o least_o so_o far_o as_o if_o not_o to_o assent_v yet_o not_o to_o contradict_v all_o which_o be_v transgress_v in_o follow_v the_o reformation_n where_o such_o a_o person_n for_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n controvert_v and_o for_o his_o deny_v conformity_n to_o the_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o the_o church_n as_o matter_n of_o faith_n either_o rely_v on_o his_o own_o judgement_n or_o in_o submit_v to_o a_o guide_n follow_v inferior_a against_o superior_a governor_n or_o synod_n or_o a_o minor_a against_o a_o much_o major_a part_n last_o follow_v those_o who_o have_v refuse_v conformity_n to_o the_o external_a communion_n even_o to_o the_o liturgy_n and_o public_a service_n of_o the_o whole_a former_a catholic_n church_n whether_o eastern_a or_o western_a and_o have_v set_v up_o a_o new_a one_o against_o they_o of_o their_o own_o which_o be_v all_o manifest_a breach_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a i_o say_v i_o see_v no_o security_n any_o can_v have_v in_o such_o a_o new_a communion_n except_v that_o which_o invincible_a ignorance_n afford_v which_o in_o such_o a_o apparent_a decession_n from_o former_a church_n and_o council_n god_n know_v how_o few_o especial_o of_o the_o learned_a that_o peruse_v the_o write_n of_o former_a time_n it_o may_v shelter_v the_o most_o moderate_a 1._o §._o 55._o n._n 1._o and_o plausible_a defence_n which_o protestant_n or_o to_o speak_v more_o particular_o which_o the_o church_n of_o england_n make_v for_o her_o discession_n defence_n where_o a_o brief_a relation_n of_o the_o
be_v reply_v that_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n be_v but_o one_o body_n compact_v with_o a_o due_a subordination_n of_o its_o member_n as_o well_o church_n as_o person_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o truth_n and_o peace_n among_o they_o and_o the_o avoid_n of_o schism_n 3_o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o western_a church_n and_o subordinate_a to_o the_o patriarch_n thereof_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o prime_a apostolic_a see_v join_v with_o a_o council_n compose_v of_o this_o body_n 4_o lie_v that_o be_v a_o part_n of_o this_o body_n this_o church_n together_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o protestant_n dissent_v and_o depart_v from_o the_o consent_a judgement_n not_o only_o of_o one_o particular_a church_n the_o roman_a but_o of_o all_o the_o other_o occidental_a church_n in_o several_a point_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v necessary_a as_o the_o other_o say_v but_o as_o themselves_o confess_v that_o be_v of_o moment_n and_o the_o fail_n in_o which_o be_v by_o they_o charge_v on_o the_o other_o side_n as_o grievous_a error_n which_o will_v infer_v the_o contrary_a to_o be_v needful_a truth_n discede_v likewise_o from_o their_o consent_a judgement_n concern_v the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n right_o understand_v and_o of_o the_o father_n affirm_v by_o these_o not_o to_o be_v for_o but_o against_o they_o 5_o lie_v depart_v both_o from_o they_o and_o the_o most_o general_a council_n that_o have_v be_v hold_v therein_o for_o near_o this_o thousand_o year_n 6_o lie_n and_o depart_v from_o they_o in_o several_a point_n wherein_o the_o eastern_a church_n also_o consent_v and_o do_v so_o still_o with_o these_o occidental_a church_n and_o their_o council_n 7_o lie_v and_o for_o submission_n require_v to_o these_o doctrine_n 4._o §._o 55._o n._n 4._o depart_v also_o from_o the_o external_a communion_n not_o only_o of_o all_o the_o western_a but_o of_o the_o eastern_a church_n even_o of_o the_o whole_a visible_a catholic_n church_n of_o that_o age_n of_o which_o in_o every_o age_n be_v say_v credo_fw-la unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la &_o apostolicam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la wherein_o this_o discession_n be_v make_v from_o the_o external_a communion_n i_o say_v so_o as_o they_o neither_o can_v nor_o yet_o can_v communicate_v with_o any_o church_n eastern_n or_o western_a in_o their_o public_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n nor_o in_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o such_o their_o universal_a discession_n both_o sufficient_o appear_v from_o the_o modern_a eastern_a and_o roman_a missal_n compare_v the_o mass_n of_o s._n chrysostom_n &_o s._n basil_n which_o admit_v some_o small_a variation_n etc._n variation_n see_v cassand_n liturg_n c._n p._n 24_o etc._n etc._n be_v the_o present_a service_n of_o all_o the_o eastern_a &_o southern_a church_n not_o much_o differ_v from_o the_o roman_a and_o be_v as_o well_o as_o the_o roman_a disallow_v by_o protestant_n and_o also_o the_o discession_n itself_o be_v confess_v both_o long_a ago_o by_o calvin_n lament_v the_o protestant_n want_n of_o union_n among_o so_o many_o adversary_n 145._o adversary_n epist_n p._n melancthoni_n p._n 145._o a_o toto_fw-la mundo_fw-la discessionem_fw-la facere_fw-la coacti_fw-la sumus_fw-la and_o by_o mr._n chillingworth_n l._n 5._o §_o 55._o as_o for_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n say_v he_o we_o have_v without_o scruple_n former_o grant_v that_o protestant_n do_v forsake_v it_o i._n e._n renounce_v the_o practice_n of_o some_o observance_n in_o which_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n before_o they_o do_v communicate_v see_v likewise_o §_o 56.89_o forsake_v the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n i._n e._n as_o he_o expound_v himself_o §_o 32_o by_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o any_o church_n in_o her_o liturgy_n and_o public_a worship_n of_o god_n thus_o he_o and_o this_o sure_o be_v do_v for_o some_o error_n extant_a in_o this_o public_a worship_n else_o why_o do_v protestant_n also_o reform_v this_o public_a service_n and_o these_o again_o such_o error_n as_o be_v not_o only_o hold_v and_o use_v in_o but_o justify_v and_o allow_v by_o this_o church_n catholic_n and_o obedience_n and_o conformity_n from_o her_o subject_n require_v thereto_o since_o if_o any_o thing_n after_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v hold_v by_o this_o church_n catholic_n sacred_a and_o authentic_a and_o by_o all_o her_o subject_n to_o be_v embrace_v and_o frequent_v her_o public_a liturgy_n and_o the_o most_o august_n sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n must_v be_v so_o what_o ground_n therefore_o of_o discession_n and_o what_o just_a complaint_n the_o protestant_n have_v against_o the_o western_a church_n exclude_v they_o from_o her_o communion_n because_o require_v something_o in_o it_o they_o can_v conform_v to_o the_o same_o ground_n of_o complaint_n they_o have_v also_o against_o the_o eastern_a church_n as_o require_v something_o in_o their_o communion_n to_o which_o they_o can_v assent_v nor_o in_o which_o join_v with_o they_o this_o for_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o oriental_a as_o well_o as_o occidental_a church_n as_o to_o god_n public_a worship_n &_o partake_v of_o their_o sacrament_n forsake_v by_o they_o and_o next_o as_o to_o any_o other_o communion_n internal_a meanwhile_n profess_v with_o these_o eastern_a church_n in_o the_o fundamental_a faith_n and_o essential_o of_o religion_n they_o can_v pretend_v none_o but_o that_o they_o have_v and_o confess_v they_o have_v the_o same_o communion_n with_o the_o western_a church_n too_o in_o what_o sense_n therefore_o they_o stand_v separate_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n viz._n in_o external_a communion_n of_o their_o public_a service_n of_o god_n and_o receive_v with_o that_o church_n the_o bless_a sacrament_n they_o stand_v separate_v from_o the_o eastern_a also_o and_o in_o what_o sense_n they_o still_o retain_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o east_n viz._n in_o the_o essential_a and_o fundamental_a article_n of_o faith_n they_o still_o retain_v this_o with_o rome_n as_o much_o as_o they_o how_o be_v it_o then_o that_o they_o say_v often_o in_o the_o reformation_n they_o leave_v the_o roman_a church_n only_a not_o the_o whole_a catholic_n number_v the_o greek_a russian_a abyssine_n and_o other_o church_n as_o three_o part_n of_o four_o and_o all_o these_o as_o on_o their_o side_n and_o join_v with_o they_o and_o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v the_o calculate_v what_o proportion_n the_o western_a church_n have_v to_o the_o whole_a catholic_n when_o as_o their_o separation_n for_o communion_n external_a be_v as_o much_o from_o the_o rest_n as_o it_o and_o both_o church_n if_o any_o for_o this_o their_o separation_n equal_o culpable_a and_o when_o as_o for_o the_o internal_a communion_n i._n e._n in_o all_o the_o essential_o of_o faith_n they_o maintain_v this_o no_o more_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o great_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n than_o they_o do_v with_o the_o roman_a or_o western_a church_n but_o here_o again_o if_o they_o allege_v their_o further_a union_n with_o the_o eastern_a church_n not_o in_o fundamental_o only_o but_o also_o in_o some_o other_o point_v not_o fundamental_a which_o be_v but_o few_o and_o none_o of_o they_o on_o the_o greek_a side_n define_v by_o any_o former_a superior_a council_n wherein_o these_o church_n oppose_v the_o roman_a among_o which_o be_v name_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o late_a a_o thing_n the_o roman_a church_n take_v single_o pretend_v not_o to_o yet_o what_o will_v this_o help_n 185._o help_n see_v disc_n 3._o §._o 185._o as_o to_o those_o many_o other_o point_n define_v by_o superior_a couneils_n 2._o couneils_n see_v before_o §_o 50._o n._n 2._o and_o wherein_o both_o east_n and_o west_n consent_n as_o those_o mention_v in_o the_o three_o discourse_n §_o 26._o &_o c._n in_o which_o point_n chief_o protestant_n be_v question_v for_o have_v make_v in_o the_o reformation_n not_o a_o secession_n from_o their_o western_a mother_n to_o another_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o a_o discession_n from_o the_o consent_a judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n 8._o depart_v from_o the_o whole_a in_o these_o point_n which_o be_v 5._o §._o 55._o n._n 5._o at_o that_o time_n of_o a_o general_a belief_n and_o practice_n not_o only_o so_o far_o as_o to_o dissent_v but_o also_o as_o to_o contradict_v and_o reform_v against_o they_o 9_o and_o all_o this_o in_o several_a of_o these_o controversy_n upon_o pretence_n of_o the_o clearness_n of_o those_o scripture_n the_o sense_n whereof_o by_o a_o much_o major_a part_n of_o the_o west_n and_o by_o the_o great_a council_n that_o can_v for_o those_o time_n be_v assemble_v there_o where_o these_o controversy_n arise_v the_o sense_n also_o of_o the_o eastern_a church_n concur_v in_o the_o
same_o doctrine_n and_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v judge_v clear_a on_o the_o other_o side_n 10._o of_o which_o controversy_n and_o matter_n in_o debate_n if_o any_o be_v in_o point_n necessary_a it_o must_v be_v grant_v that_o such_o council_n be_v universal_o accept_v in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o can_v only_o be_v rational_o require_v 38._o require_v see_v before_o §._o 38._o in_o these_o be_v unerrable_a and_o may_v lawful_o require_v from_o their_o subject_n assent_n thereto_o or_o at_o least_o if_o late_a council_n faulty_a in_o demand_v their_o subject_n assent_v so_o must_v be_v the_o four_o first_o that_o be_v allow_v by_o protestant_n 11._o to_o which_o council_n also_o and_o not_o to_o their_o subject_n must_v belong_v the_o judgement_n of_o what_o or_o how_o many_o point_n be_v to_o be_v account_v necessary_a or_o else_o neither_o do_v the_o judgement_n hereof_o belong_v to_o the_o four_o first_o council_n nor_o can_v they_o just_o upon_o it_o require_v assent_n and_o join_v some_o such_o point_n to_o the_o creed_n 12._o but_o if_o such_o controversy_n be_v suppose_v in_o non-necessaries_a yet_o for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n after_o the_o determination_n of_o such_o a_o council_n the_o advers._fw-la party_n ought_v to_o acquiesce_v in_o silence_n and_o non-contradicting_a without_o either_o pronounce_v that_o a_o error_n which_o such_o council_n hold_v a_o truth_n or_o the_o scripture_n clear_a for_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o such_o council_n disallow_n 13._o or_o if_o protestant_n will_v not_o be_v oblige_v to_o this_o why_o do_v they_o appeal_v to_o a_o free_a general_n council_n for_o decide_v difference_n and_o settle_v a_o peace_n when_o they_o will_v neither_o yield_v the_o obedience_n of_o silence_n to_o the_o definition_n of_o such_o council_n in_o point_n not_o necessary_a nor_o grant_v that_o any_o of_o the_o controversy_n concern_v which_o they_o appeal_v to_o they_o be_v point_n necessary_a wherein_o such_o council_n universal_o accept_v may_v be_v submit_v to_o by_o they_o as_o un-errable_a the_o sum_n than_o be_v that_o their_o reformation_n be_v not_o from_o some_o coordinate_a church_n attempt_v to_o tyrannize_v over_o they_o as_o the_o second_o branch_n of_o their_o defence_n and_o those_o follow_v to_o the_o eight_o do_v import_n but_o from_o their_o superior_n from_o these_o not_o for_o something_o hold_v or_o practise_v and_o not_o enjoin_v for_o here_o all_o have_v their_o liberty_n be_v no_o cause_n to_o depart_v but_o for_o point_n define_v and_o wherein_o conformity_n be_v require_v by_o they_o to_o who_o judgement_n therefore_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v submit_v so_o far_o as_o to_o learn_v from_o it_o in_o matter_n question_v what_o be_v truth_n and_o error_n or_o at_o least_o so_o far_o as_o not_o to_o contradict_v it_o and_o consequent_o as_o not_o to_o reform_v against_o it_o in_o do_v the_o contrary_a of_o which_o they_o be_v charge_v as_o guilty_a of_o schism_n and_o of_o break_v the_o law_n of_o subordination_n and_o unity_n establish_v in_o the_o church_n 1._o church_n of_o which_o see_v disc_n 2._o §._o 24._o n._n 1._o 14._o last_o whereas_o against_o such_o obedience_n a_o obligation_n be_v plead_v n._n 6._o to_o do_v nothing_o against_o conscience_n it_o be_v reply_v that_o a_o man_n conscience_n miss-perswaded_n that_o something_o be_v a_o error_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v indeed_o and_o he_o upon_o no_o command_n to_o profess_v assent_n thereto_o but_o excuse_v not_o from_o guilt_n nor_o free_v from_o the_o church_n censure_n those_o who_o may_v have_v better_o inform_v it_o 8._o it_o see_v dr._n hammond_n of_o schism_n c._n 2._o §._o 8._o thus_o the_o remonstrance_n after_o which_o well_o weigh_v i_o see_v not_o what_o security_n any_o one_o can_v have_v in_o continue_v in_o such_o a_o society_n as_o have_v thus_o break_v the_o link_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n and_o life_n in_o a_o separation_n from_o the_o main_a body_n if_o either_o the_o reject_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n former_a council_n be_v heresy_n or_o relinquish_a her_o communion_n schism_n chap._n viii_o vi_o that_o according_a to_o the_o former_a concession_n make_v in_o the_o five_o chapter_n §_o 32._o if_o so_o enlarge_v as_o ancient_a church-practice_n and_o reason_n require_v all_o or_o most_o of_o the_o protestant_a controversy_n be_v by_o former_a oblige_v council_n already_o decide_v §_o 56._o n._n 1_o etc._n etc._n a_o instance_n hereof_o in_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o corporal_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n or_o transubstantiation_n §_o 57_o now_o to_o consider_v the_o other_o concession_n etc._n concession_n see_v before_o §._o 41._o and_o §_o 32_o etc._n etc._n of_o more_o moderate_a protestant_n divine_v 1._o §._o 56._o n._n 1._o *_o grant_v our_o lord_n assistance_n to_o the_o church_n catholic_n such_o as_o that_o she_o shall_v also_o for_o ever_o be_v a_o unerring_a guide_n in_o necessary_n a_o thing_n deny_v by_o mr._n chillingworth_n decide_v chillingworth_n see_v before_o §._o 4._o that_o according_a to_o those_o condition_n of_o determine_a controversy_n that_o can_v just_o be_v require_v most_o of_o those_o between_o cathol_n &_o protestant_n have_v be_v already_o decide_v because_o of_o a_o consequence_n thereof_o which_o he_o foresee_v namely_o that_o we_o must_v take_v her_o judgement_n and_o guidance_n also_o in_o this_o point_n what_o point_n be_v fundamental_a or_o necessary_a and_o than_o who_o see_v not_o what_o will_v follow_v namely_o that_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v this_o church_n in_o all_o point_n wherein_o she_o say_v she_o be_v unerring_a and_o upon_o this_o *_o grant_v also_o her_o general_n council_n or_o representative_a she_o have_v no_o other_o way_n to_o teach_v direct_v define_v any_o thing_n or_o at_o at_o least_o no_o other_o way_n so_o clear_a and_o evident_a to_o be_v unerring_a in_o necessary_n provide_v that_o such_o council_n be_v universal_o accept_v and_o not_o oppose_v or_o reverse_v by_o the_o church_n catholic_n in_o another_o follow_a representative_a but_o receive_v by_o a_o general_n tacit_n at_o least_o approbation_n and_o conformity_n to_o its_o decree_n where_o also_o it_o be_v concede_v that_o a_o council_n for_o its_o meeting_n less_o general_a yet_o if_o have_v a_o universal_a acceptation_n be_v equivalent_a thereto_o and_o hence_o make_v their_o frequent_a appeal_n to_o these_o council_n as_o the_o supreme_a and_o ultimate_a ecclesiastical_a court_n for_o settle_v unity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o peace_n in_o the_o church_n and_o wherein_o they_o promise_v victory_n to_o their_o cause_n and_o a_o end_n of_o debate_n of_o which_o see_v before_o §_o 32._o etc._n etc._n a_o general_n council_n 2._o §._o 56._o n._n 2._o after_o it_o be_v admit_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v then_o infallible_a say_v the_o archbishop_n 346._o archbishop_n p._n 346._o he_o mean_v in_o necessary_n but_o bishop_n bramhall_n further_o when_o inferior_a question_n say_v he_o 27_o he_o vindic._n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n 27_o not_o fundamental_a be_v once_o define_v by_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n all_o christian_n though_o they_o can_v assent_v in_o their_o judgement_n be_v oblige_v to_o passive_a obedience_n to_o possess_v their_o soul_n in_o peace_n and_o patience_n and_o they_o who_o shall_v oppose_v the_o authority_n and_o shall_v disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n deserve_v to_o be_v punish_v as_o heretic_n prefat_n reply_v to_o chalced._n prefat_n and_o i_o submit_v say_v he_o ‖_o myself_o to_o the_o representative_a church_n that_o be_v to_o a_o free_a general_n council_n or_o so_o general_a as_o can_v be_v procure_v and_o schism_n guard_v p._n 136._o there_o be_v nothing_o say_v he_o that_o we_o long_v after_o more_o than_o a_o general_n council_n right_o call_v right_o proceed_v or_o in_o defect_n of_o that_o a_o free_a occidental_a council_n as_o general_a as_o may_v be_v see_v much_o more_o to_o this_o purpose_n say_v by_o this_o bishop_n before_z §_o 34_o etc._n etc._n and_o thus_o dr._n hammond_n 6._o hammond_n of_o heres_fw-la §._o 14._o n._n 6._o notwithstanding_o what_o be_v quote_v out_o of_o he_o before_o §_o 5._o we_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o any_o general_a council_n true_o such_o ever_o do_v or_o shall_v err_v in_o any_o matter_n of_o faith_n nor_o shall_v we_o further_o dispute_v the_o authority_n i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v to_o oblige_v we_o then_o we_o shall_v be_v due_o satisfy_v of_o the_o universality_n of_o any_o such_o council_n and_o answer_v to_o catholic_n gentleman_n 3._o gentleman_n c._n 2._o §._o 3._o a_o congregation_n that_o be_v fallible_a may_v yet_o have_v authority_n to_o make_v decision_n and_o to_o require_v inferior_n so_o far_o to_o acquiesce_v to_o their_o determination_n as_o not_o to_o disquiet_v the_o peace_n of_o that_o church_n with_o their_o contrary_a opinion_n and_o 7._o and_o ibid._n c._n 8._o §._o ●_o n._n 7._o i_o
according_o both_o in_o council_n their_o define_v matter_n of_o religion_n and_o in_o the_o church_n acceptation_n of_o their_o decree_n the_o much_o major_a part_n must_v conclude_v the_o whole_a and_o the_o oppose_a of_o their_o definition_n also_o be_v heresy_n and_o separation_n from_o their_o communion_n schism_n if_o a_o opposition_n to_o or_o separation_n from_o the_o whole_a be_v so_o §_o 27._o n._n 4_o 14._o as_o for_o the_o protestant_a mark_n whereby_o in_o any_o division_n to_o know_v these_o true_a guide_n viz._n a_o right_a teach_n of_o god_n word_n and_o a_o right_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o these_o be_v thing_n to_o be_v learn_v from_o these_o true_a guide_n first_o know_v §_o 28_o chap._n 4._o a_o application_n of_o the_o former_a proposition_n in_o a_o search_n which_o of_o the_o opposite_a present_a church_n or_o of_o the_o dissent_v ecclesiastical_a governor_n thereof_o be_v our_o true_a guide_n §_o 30._o motive_n persuade_v that_o the_o roman_a and_o the_o other_o western_a church_n unite_v with_o it_o and_o with_o the_o head_n thereof_o s._n peter_n successor_n be_v this_o true_a guide_n 1_o their_o be_v the_o very_a same_o body_n with_o that_o which_o protestant_n grant_v be_v 150_o year_n ago_o the_o christian_n be_v true_a guide_n and_o the_o other_o body_n confess_v themselves_o in_o external_a communion_n depart_v from_o it_o §_o 33._o 2_o their_o be_v that_o body_n to_o which_o if_o we_o follow_v the_o former_a rule_n recite_v prop._n 12._o we_o ought_v to_o submit_v §_o 35._o 3_o their_o be_v that_o body_n that_o own_v and_o adhere_v to_o the_o definition_n and_o decree_n of_o all_o the_o former_a council_n such_o as_o the_o church_n of_o precede_a age_n have_v receive_v as_o general_n or_o oblige_v as_o well_o those_o council_n since_o as_o those_o before_o the_o six_o or_o seven_o century_n which_o late_a the_o other_o party_n reject_v §_o 37._o chap._n 5._o the_o pretend_a security_n of_o those_o protestant_n who_o deny_v any_o certain_a live_a or_o personal_a guide_n infallible_a in_o necessary_n affirm_v 1._o that_o all_o necessary_a matter_n of_o faith_n be_v even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a clear_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o controversy_n in_o non-necessaries_a needless_a to_o be_v decide_v §_o 38._o 2._o that_o all_o necessary_n be_v clear_a in_o scripture_n because_o god_n have_v leave_v no_o other_o certain_a mean_n rule_n or_o guide_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o save_o the_o scripture_n §_o 39_o n_o 1._o not_o any_o certain_a live_a guide_n 1_o which_o be_v infallible_a as_o their_o guide_n the_o scripture_n be_v §_o 39_o n._n 2._o 2_o which_o the_o unlearned_a in_o any_o division_n can_v discern_v from_o the_o false_a guide_n or_o know_v their_o deeree_n better_o than_o the_o scripture_n 3_o from_o who_o the_o scripture_n direct_v they_o to_o learn_v necessary_n or_o tell_v they_o what_o church_n or_o party_n they_o be_v to_o adhere_v to_o in_o any_o schism_n make_v in_o which_o infallible_a guide_n if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o as_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o the_o great_a concernment_n the_o scripture_n will_v not_o have_v be_v silent_a ibid._n reply_n 1._o that_o evidence_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v be_v the_o usual_a plea_n of_o former_a heretic_n in_o their_o dissent_v from_o the_o church_n 2._o that_o as_o to_o the_o main_a and_o principal_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o deny_v by_o roman_a catholic_n but_o only_o the_o clearness_n thereof_o as_o to_o all_o man_n capacity_n question_v and_o another_o guide_n hold_v necessary_a it_o be_v reply_v then_o i._o concern_v the_o clearness_n of_o scripture_n 1._o that_o some_o controversy_n in_o religion_n since_o the_o write_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v be_v concern_v point_n necessary_a as_o those_o controversy_n concern_v the_o trinity_n the_o deity_n and_o humanity_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o necessity_n of_o god_n grace_n etc._n etc._n §_o 43._o 2._o that_o the_o more_o clear_a all_o necessary_n be_v in_o scripture_n still_o with_o the_o more_o security_n may_v christian_n rely_v for_o they_o on_o the_o church_n judgement_n from_o which_o also_o they_o receive_v these_o scripture_n §_o 41._o 3._o that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n that_o all_o necessary_n shall_v be_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n as_o to_o all_o man_n clear_o §_o 41._o 1._o because_o it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o god_n have_v leave_v this_o one_o point_n clear_a in_o scripture_n that_o we_o shall_v in_o all_o difficulty_n and_o obscurity_n of_o they_o follow_v the_o direction_n and_o adhere_v to_o the_o exposition_n and_o doctrine_n of_o these_o guide_n §_o 41._o 2._o sufficient_a if_o god_n have_v by_o other_o apostolical_a tradition_n at_o least_o clear_o reveal_v to_o these_o church-guide_n all_o such_o necessary_a truth_n to_o be_v successive_o communicate_v by_o they_o to_o his_o people_n §_o 44._o 3._o sufficient_a if_o god_n have_v by_o tradition_n at_o least_o clear_o reveal_v to_o these_o church-guide_n the_o sense_n of_o such_o scripture_n as_o be_v in_o point_n necessary_a any_o way_n obscure_a ibid._n 4._o sufficient_a if_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n have_v clear_o enough_o reveal_v all_o necessary_a truth_n to_o the_o capacity_n of_o these_o church_n guide_n use_v due_a mean_n though_o he_o have_v not_o to_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o unlearned_a for_o from_o those_o these_o may_v learn_v they_o §_o 45._o ii_o concern_v a_o live_a guide_n 1._o that_o where_o the_o scripture_n especial_o several_a text_n compare_v be_v ambiguous_a and_o in_o controversy_n the_o christian_n guide_n to_o know_v the_o true_a sense_n can_v be_v the_o scripture_n but_o either_o the_o church_n or_o their_o own_o judgement_n §_o 46._o n._n 1._o 2._o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n shall_v direct_v christian_n to_o what_o guide_n they_o be_v to_o repair_v §_o 46._o n._n 2._o or_o to_o what_o church-prelate_n or_o party_n in_o any_o schism_n christian_n for_o ever_o ought_v to_o adhere_v §_o 47._o n._n 2._o 3._o yet_o that_o god_n have_v give_v christian_n a_o sufficient_a direction_n herein_o in_o his_o leave_v a_o due_a subordination_n among_o these_o governor_n whereby_o the_o inferior_n be_v subject_v to_o the_o superior_a and_o a_o part_n unto_o the_o whole_a §_o 47._o n._n 3._o and_o that_o christian_n may_v more_o clear_o know_v the_o sense_n of_o their_o definition_n in_o matter_n controvert_v than_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n §_o 48._o the_o second_o discourse_n chap._n i._n protestant_n assent_v 1._o that_o there_o be_v at_o this_o present_a a_o one_o holy_a catholic_n and_o apostolic_a church_n §_o 1._o 2._o that_o the_o present_a pastor_n and_o governor_n thereof_o have_v authority_n to_o decide_v controversy_n §_o 2._o 3._o and_o that_o their_o governor_n shall_v never_o err_v or_o misguide_a christian_n at_o least_o in_o absolute_a necessary_n §_o 3._o 4._o and_o that_o they_o with_o the_o church_n govern_v by_o they_o do_v stand_v always_o distinct_a from_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a congregation_n §_o 5._o §_o 1_o one_a that_o there_o be_v a_o one_o holy_a catholic_n apostolic_a church_n in_o this_o age_n and_o at_o this_o present_a time_n all_o 1_o proposition_n 1_o i_o suppose_v grant_v §_o 2_o 2_o that_o this_o present_a church_n that_o be_v in_o its_o pastor_n 2._o prop._n 2._o and_o governor_n be_v appoint_v for_o a_o guide_n to_o christian_n and_o have_v authority_n to_o decide_v controversy_n be_v unquestioned_a also_o among_o several_a learned_a protestant_n etc._n protestant_n see_v disc_n 1._o §._o 3●_n etc._n etc._n and_o i_o think_v be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o 20_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o article_n say_v the_o church_n have_v authority_n in_o controversy_n of_o faith_n and_o what_o can_v it_o mean_v but_o for_o decide_v they_o or_o who_o decide_v they_o but_o the_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n §_o 3_o 3_o that_o these_o present_a governor_n in_o this_o present_a age_n either_o *_o collectively_o take_v as_o they_o be_v assemble_v in_o a_o council_n 3._o prop._n 3._o the_o decree_n whereof_o be_v universal_o accept_v by_o those_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n diffusive_a that_o be_v absent_a from_o it_o or_o *_o disjunctive_o take_v for_o some_o visible_a society_n or_o other_o of_o they_o at_o least_o sometime_o lesser_o sometime_o great_a shall_v never_o misguide_v christian_n at_o least_o in_o absolute_a necessary_n to_o salvation_n be_v also_o acknowledge_v by_o learned_a protestant_n etc._n protestant_n see_v disc_n 1._o §._o 25._o etc._n etc._n and_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o clear_a sense_n of_o the_o 19_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o affirm_v '_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v a_o congregation_n of_o faithful_a man_n 23._o man_n see_v art_n
he_o a_o synod_n consist_v of_o the_o metropolitan_o 513._o metropolitan_o l._n 5._o c._n 30._o p._n 513._o and_o bishop_n of_o one_o kingdom_n or_o state_n only_o the_o chief_a primate_n be_v moderator_n 2_o if_o of_o many_o kingdom_n one_o of_o the_o patriarch_n and_o chief_a bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v moderator_n every_o church_n be_v therefore_o this_o of_o england_n as_o to_o ecclesiastical_a governme_n be_v subordinate_a to_o some_o one_o of_o the_o patriarchal_a church_n and_o incorporate_v into_o the_o unity_n of_o it_o 3._o three_o the_o action_n of_o a_o whole_a patriarchship_n be_v subject_a to_o a_o synod_n ecumenical_a and_o elsewhere_o he_o say_v 668._o say_v l._n 5._o c._n 52._o p._n 668._o that_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n may_v call_v a_o council_n of_o the_o western_a bishop_n lawful_o punish_v those_o who_o obey_v not_o his_o summons_n and_o he_o and_o ihe_a council_n so_o assemble_v may_v make_v decree_n which_o shall_v be_v obligatory_a to_o all_o the_o western_a church_n and_o thus_o bishop_n bramhall_n 257._o bramhall_n vindic._n of_o the_o ch._n of_o england_n p._n 257._o what_o power_n the_o metropolitan_a have_v over_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o own_o province_n the_o same_o have_v a_o patriarch_n over_o the_o metropolitan_o and_o bishop_n of_o sundry_a province_n within_o his_o own_o patriarchate_o and_o afterward_o wherein_o then_o consist_v patriarchal_a authority_n in_o ordain_v their_o metropolitan_n for_o with_o inferior_a bishop_n they_o may_v not_o meddle_v or_o confirm_v they_o in_o impose_v of_o hand_n or_o give_v the_o pall_n in_o convocate_a patriarchal_a synod_n and_o preside_v in_o they_o &c_n &c_n when_o metropolitical_a synod_n do_v not_o suffice_v to_o determine_v some_o emergent_a difference_n or_o difficulty_n so_o in_o schism-guarded_n p._n 349._o he_o say_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o general_n council_n and_o under_o that_o each_o patriarch_n in_o his_o patriarchate_n and_o among_o the_o patriarch_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o a_o priority_n of_o order_n and_o see_v ibid._n p._n 4._o his_o allow_a this_o bishop_n to_o be_v exordium_n vnitatis_fw-la this_o of_o the_o subordination_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o several_a nation_n to_o a_o council_n patriarchal_a take_v out_o of_o other_o because_o omit_v by_o dr._n hammond_n above_o which_o the_o next_o and_o high_a subordination_n be_v that_o of_o all_o the_o bishop_n in_o christianity_n to_o a_o council_n general_n to_o which_o general_n council_n this_o doctor_n thus_o profess_v elsewhere_o 149._o elsewhere_o of_o heresy_n §._o 11._o p._n 149._o the_o due_a subjection_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n upon_o the_o strength_n of_o this_o persuasion_n say_v he_o that_o god_n will_v never_o permit_v any_o such_o universal_a testimony_n concern_v the_o faith_n to_o conspire_v in_o convey_v error_n to_o we_o as_o we_o have_v never_o yet_o oppose_v never_o oppose_v that_o imply_v obedience_n of_o silence_n but_o upon_o the_o former_a persuasion_n i_o see_v not_o why_o he_o shall_v not_o say_v never_o dissent_v from_o any_o universal_a council_n nor_o other_o voice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n such_o as_o by_o the_o catholic_n rule_n can_v be_v contest_v to_o be_v such_o so_o for_o the_o future_a we_o profess_v never_o to_o do_v and_o on_o 1_o tim._n 3.15_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n he_o comment_v thus_o according_a to_o this_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n be_v say_v eph._n 4.11_o to_o have_v give_v not_o only_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n but_o also_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n i.e._n the_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o compact_n of_o the_o saint_n into_o a_o church_n for_o the_o continue_v they_o in_o all_o truth_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v no_o long_o like_o child_n carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n and_o so_o again_o when_o heresy_n come_v into_o the_o church_n in_o the_o first_o age_n it_o be_v every_o where_o apparent_a by_o ignatius_n epistle_n that_o the_o only_a way_n of_o avoid_v error_n and_o danger_n be_v to_o adhere_v to_o the_o bishop_n in_o communion_n and_o doctrine_n and_o whosoever_o depart_v from_o he_o and_o that_o form_n of_o wholesome_a word_n keep_v by_o he_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v corrupt_v and_o the_o same_o also_o to_o s._n w._n object_v 255._o object_v schism_n disarm_v p._n 255._o that_o it_o avail_v not_o for_o freedom_n from_o schism_n to_o adhere_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o our_o bishop_n as_o the_o arrian_n do_v if_o such_o bishop_n have_v reject_v the_o authority_n of_o his_o superior_n and_o teach_v contrary_a to_o they_o he_o grant_v 261._o grant_v answ_n to_o schism_n disarm_z p._n 261._o concern_v any_o bishop_n and_o those_o adhere_n to_o they_o if_o depart_v from_o their_o superior_n that_o retain_v the_o authority_n of_o their_o bishop_n be_v not_o be_v take_v alone_o any_o certain_a argument_n or_o evidence_n of_o not_o be_v schismatics_n etc._n etc._n this_o he_o for_o establish_v such_o church-authority_n and_o the_o due_a subordination_n thereof_o from_o any_o of_o which_o whether_o person_n or_o council_n a_o voluntary_a departure_n of_o those_o who_o be_v subordinate_a 30_o subordinate_a of_o schism_n c_o 3_o answ_n to_o c._n gentlem._n p._n 30_o or_o also_o a_o wilful_a continuance_n under_o their_o censure_n lay_v upon_o they_o ‖_o be_v by_o he_o declare_v schism_n of_o which_o schism_n he_o speak_v thus_o 9_o thus_o answ_n to_o c._n gent._n p._n 9_o first_o say_v he_o those_o brethren_n or_o people_n which_o reject_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o deacon_n or_o presbyter_n in_o any_o thing_n 4._o §._o 4._o wherein_o they_o be_v ordain_v and_o appoint_v by_o the_o bishop_n 2._o §._o 24._o n._n 2._o and_o as_o long_o as_o they_o continue_v in_o obedience_n to_o he_o and_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n do_v break_v off_o and_o separate_v from_o they_o 34._o they_o of_o schism_n p._n 34._o refuse_v to_o live_v regular_o under_o they_o they_o be_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o christ_n adjudge_v and_o look_v on_o as_o schismatic_n here_o then_o be_v many_o late_a sect_n among_o protestant_n reject_v the_o clergy_n i_o know_v not_o well_o by_o what_o name_n to_o call_v they_o confess_v guilty_a of_o schism_n in_o like_a manner_n say_v he_o 37.41_o he_o p._n 37.41_o if_o we_o ascend_v to_o the_o next_o high_o link_v that_o of_o the_o bishop_n to_o who_o both_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n as_o well_o as_o thebrethren_n or_o people_n be_v oblige_v to_o live_v in_o obedience_n the_o withdraw_a or_o deny_v this_o obedience_n in_o any_o of_o these_o will_v certain_o fall_v under_o this_o guilt_n and_o as_o this_o obedience_n may_v be_v of_o two_o sort_n either_o of_o a_o low_a or_o of_o a_o high_a kind_n the_o deny_v obedience_n in_o any_o particular_a lawful_a command_n of_o the_o superior_a or_o the_o cast_n off_o all_o obedience_n together_o the_o thron_v they_o or_o set_v up_o ourselves_o either_o in_o their_o stead_n or_o in_o opposition_n to_o they_o so_o will_v the_o schism_n be_v also_o a_o light_a and_o a_o grosser_n separation_n and_n here_o be_v all_o protestant_n presbyterial_a whether_o person_n or_o church_n for_o any_o thing_n i_o can_v understand_v oppose_v episcopacy_n or_o settle_v instead_o of_o it_o a_o presbyterial_a church-government_n confess_v also_o by_o he_o guilty_a of_o schism_n of_o schism_n i_o mean_v from_o their_o spiritual_a superior_n whereby_o also_o they_o become_v no_o member_n of_o the_o church-catholick_n which_o church-catholick_n stand_n always_o contradistinct_a to_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a church_n nor_o be_v any_o such_o schismatic_n know_v to_o be_v so_o and_o not_o recant_v such_o their_o schism_n to_o be_v admit_v to_o enjoy_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o presbytery_n of_o any_o church_n that_o profess_v itself_o a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n which_o thing_n will_v 1_o cut_v off_o no_o small_a body_n of_o the_o protestant_n from_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o 2_o will_v render_v in_o some_o manner_n partaker_n of_o their_o guilt_n any_o other_o protestant-clergy_n that_o shall_v communicate_v know_o with_o they_o the_o same_o sentence_n upon_o the_o presbyterian_o desert_v their_o bishop_n that_o be_v their_o spiritual_a superior_n pronounce_v dr._n ferne_n they_o have_v incur_v say_v he_o by_o leave_v we_o 48._o we_o the_o case_n between_o eng._n and_o rome_n p._n 46_o 48._o and_o i_o wish_v they_o will_v sad_o consider_v it_o no_o less_o than_o the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n which_o lie_v heavy_o on_o as_o many_o as_o have_v of_o what_o persuasion_n or_o sect_n soever_o wilful_o divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n whether_o they_o do_v this_o by_o a_o bare_a separation_n or_o by_o add_v violence_n and_o sacrilege_n to_o it_o for_o make_v good_a say_v he_o this_o charge_n of_o schism_n against_o they_o we_o
the_o privilege_n of_o a_o undisturbed_a ecclesiastical_a government_n and_o which_o seem_v by_o reason_n of_o its_o numerous_a clergy_n and_o populacy_n and_o extent_n of_o the_o arm_n of_o this_o body_n &_o propagation_n of_o its_o faith_n into_o all_o the_o other_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v the_o great_a part_n of_o christianity_n &_o that_o which_o have_v be_v always_o the_o most_o dignify_v by_o reason_n of_o s._n peter_n chair_n from_o which_o for_o any_o of_o the_o western_a body_n to_o make_v a_o appeal_n out_o of_o these_o bound_n to_o the_o present_a eastern_a church_n now_o hinder_v by_o the_o great_a oppressor_n of_o christianity_n there_o &_o disturb_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o any_o such_o judicature_n and_o also_o much_o divide_v among_o themselves_o and_o who_o have_v not_o meet_v in_o any_o council_n for_o this_o eight_o hundred_o year_n save_v by_o send_v at_o several_a time_n their_o delegate_n into_o the_o west_n for_o any_o i_o say_v to_o make_v a_o appeal_n from_o a_o church_n flourish_v in_o government_n and_o discipline_n in_o learning_n and_o record_n of_o antiquity_n the_o city_n still_o on_o a_o hill_n and_o candle_n on_o a_o candlestick_n to_o seek_v for_o vote_n among_o the_o jacobite_n maronites_n caphtite_n armenian_n abyssine_n or_o greek_a church_n etc._n etc._n several_a of_o they_o be_v suspect_v of_o ancient_a heresy_n and_o if_o heretic_n no_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n appear_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o refusal_n of_o a_o trial_n and_o avoid_v the_o sentence_n of_o any_o such_o guide_n and_o judge_n as_o god_n providence_n have_v afford_v we_o and_o beside_o this_o be_v a_o appeal_n where_o can_v those_o church_n now_o free_o deliver_v their_o sentence_n and_o be_v now_o set_v on_o the_o bench_n as_o this_o present_a judge_n the_o appealant_o can_v have_v no_o hope_n of_o any_o success_n to_o their_o cause_n for_o that_o these_o church_n or_o at_o least_o the_o great_a body_n of_o they_o as_o be_v show_v elsewhere_o 158._o elsewhere_o disc_n 3._o §._o 158._o appear_v to_o keep_v as_o great_a a_o distance_n from_o the_o reform_a as_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o western_a body_n do_v §_o 37_o 3_o if_o the_o council_n that_o be_v extant_a and_o repute_v for_o general_n since_o the_o first_o six_o or_o seven_o hundred_o year_n to_o the_o time_n of_o luther_n reformation_n shall_v be_v by_o any_o acknowledge_v either_o for_o general_n 3._o 3._o or_o for_o the_o most_o universal_a that_o can_v well_o be_v convene_v or_o at_o least_o that_o be_v find_v actual_o to_o have_v be_v convene_v a_o thing_n which_o i_o think_v though_o the_o testimony_n the_o present_a church_n give_v to_o they_o be_v make_v no_o use_n of_o the_o common_a veracity_n of_o history_n will_v clear_v to_o we_o beside_o that_o none_o have_v any_o other_o council_n of_o a_o equal_a authority_n in_o these_o time_n to_o nominate_v and_o set_v up_o against_o they_o and_o those_o who_o demolish_v they_o do_v it_o without_o erect_v or_o discover_v to_o we_o any_o better_a or_o any_o beside_o i_o say_v if_o any_o think_v meet_v to_o rely_v on_o the_o judgement_n of_o these_o past_a council_n in_o the_o present_a matter_n these_o also_o will_v sufficient_o evidence_n to_o we_o that_o the_o first_o of_o these_o body_n forenamed_a be_v our_o present_a rightful_a guide_n and_o judge_n for_o since_o the_o act_n and_o law_n of_o such_o council_n be_v not_o only_o of_o force_n and_o obligatory_a to_o those_o present_a time_n wherein_o they_o sit_v but_o to_o all_o future_a age_n with_o the_o execution_n of_o which_o act_n and_o decree_n the_o succeed_a pastor_n and_o chief_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o several_a station_n and_o residence_n in_o all_o follow_a time_n stand_v charge_v till_o these_o be_v by_o a_o equal_a authority_n reverse_v it_o seem_v clear_a that_o in_o any_o division_n happen_v afterward_o of_o these_o pastor_n those_o be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v our_o right_a guide_n who_o own_o adhere_v to_o and_o propagate_v the_o definition_n and_o law_n of_o these_o former_a council_n now_o this_o we_o see_v the_o first_o of_o these_o two_o body_n do_v as_o the_o latter_a renounce_v they_o yet_o renounce_v they_o without_o the_o produce_v of_o the_o patronage_n of_o any_o council_n at_o all_o in_o their_o stead_n pull_v down_o as_o it_o be_v all_o the_o church_n castle_n and_o fort_n if_o i_o may_v call_v her_o council_n so_o against_o the_o incursion_n of_o error_n and_o heresy_n that_o have_v be_v build_v in_o several_a age_n for_o near_a a_o thousand_o year_n and_o yet_o show_v none_o other_o at_o all_o for_o christian_n in_o the_o many_o point_n that_o have_v be_v dispute_v to_o repair_v to_o but_o leave_v the_o sad_a spectator_n of_o these_o their_o demolition_n quite_o dishearten_v as_o diffide_v in_o the_o church_n judgement_n so_o much_o decry_v for_o error_n and_o have_v yet_o more_o reason_n to_o distrust_v their_o own_o and_o so_o not_o know_v in_o this_o case_n whither_o to_o betake_v themselves_o for_o the_o settle_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o conscience_n for_o sure_o this_o unerringness_n which_o the_o late_a reformer_n have_v deny_v to_o those_o great_a body_n of_o the_o church_n they_o can_v in_o reason_n assume_v to_o those_o lesser_a convention_n of_o their_o own_o chap._n v._n the_o pretend_a security_n of_o those_o protestant_n who_o deny_v any_o certain_a live_v or_o personal_a guide_n infallible_a in_o necessary_n affirm_v that_o all_o necessary_a matter_n of_o faith_n be_v even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a clear_a in_o scripture_n and_o the_o controversy_n in_o non_fw-la necessary_n needless_a to_o be_v decide_v §_o 38._o necessary_n clear_v in_o scripture_n because_o god_n have_v leave_v no_o other_o certain_a mean_n or_o guide_n for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o §_o 39_o n._n 1._o 1_o no_o guide_n which_o be_v infallible_a 2_o which_o the_o unlearned_a in_o any_o division_n can_v discern_v from_o false_a or_o know_v and_o understand_v their_o decree_n better_o than_o the_o scripture_n 3_o or_o which_o the_o scripture_n direct_v they_o to_o for_o learn_v necessary_n §_o 39_o n._n 2._o the_o reply_n 2._o that_o evidence_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v be_v the_o usual_a plea_n of_o former_a heretic_n in_o their_o dissent_v from_o the_o church_n §_o 40._o n._n 1._o 2._o that_o as_o to_o the_o main_a and_o principal_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o deny_v by_o roman_a catholic_n but_o only_o the_o clearness_n thereof_o as_o to_o all_o man_n capacity_n question_v and_o another_o guide_n hold_v necessary_a §_o 40._o n._n 2._o it_o be_v reply_v then_o 1._o *_o concern_v the_o clearness_n of_o scripture_n 1_o that_o some_o of_o the_o controversy_n in_o religion_n since_o the_o scripture_n write_v have_v be_v concern_v point_n necessary_a §_o 41._o 2_o that_o the_o more_o clear_a all_o necessary_n be_v in_o scripture_n the_o more_o security_n christian_n have_v in_o the_o church_n judgement_n §_o 42._o 3_o that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n that_o all_o necessary_n be_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n clear_o to_o all_o 1_o because_o it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o thing_n doubtful_a therein_o direct_v to_o these_o guide_n §_o 43._o 2_o sufficient_a if_o such_o thing_n be_v clear_v to_o these_o guide_n by_o other_o apostolical_a tradition_n §_o 44._o 3_o or_o if_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n touch_v these_o matter_n be_v clear_v to_o they_o by_o tradition_n §_o ib._n 4_o or_o if_o such_o sense_n be_v clear_a in_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o well_o examine_v and_o compare_v to_o they_o though_o not_o to_o all_o §_o 45._o 2_o y_o concern_v the_o guide_n 1_o that_o scripture_n in_o what_o it_o be_v ambiguous_a can_v be_v a_o guide_n §_o 49._o n._n 1._o 2_o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o christian_n be_v in_o or_o by_o the_o scripture_n direct_v to_o another_o guide_n ib._n n._n 2._o 3_o yet_o that_o th●y_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n so_o direct_v §_o 47._o n._n 3._o 4_o and_o may_v in_o many_o point_n more_o easy_o understand_v the_o sense_n of_o their_o decision_n than_o of_o the_o scripture_n §_o 48._o §_o 38_o the_o usual_a security_n that_o some_o of_o they_o give_v their_o follower_n α._n α._n be_v this_o α_n that_o all_o controversy_n that_o arise_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o in_o matter_n very_o profitable_a 54._o profitable_a chillingw_o p._n 54._o be_v so_o clear_o decide_v or_o determine_v in_o scripture_n that_o none_o learned_a or_o unlearned_a use_v that_o industry_n which_o humane_a prudence_n and_o ordinary_a discretion_n his_o condition_n consider_v advise_v he_o to_o can_v err_v in_o they_o 20.86_o they_o see_v chiling_n p_o 115.92_o 19.58_o 59_o pref._n §._o 30._o etc._n etc._n
verbi_fw-la gratiâ_fw-la id_fw-la sentire_fw-la de_fw-la christo_fw-la quod_fw-la photinus_n opinatus_fw-la est_fw-la i._n e._n in_o modern_a language_n to_o be_v a_o socinian_n no_o small_a error_n &_o in_fw-la ejus_fw-la haeresi_fw-la baptizari_fw-la extra_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la communionem_fw-la alium_fw-la vero_fw-la hoc_fw-la idem_fw-la sentire_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o catholicâ_fw-la baptizari_fw-la existimantem_fw-la ipsam_fw-la esse_fw-la catholicam_fw-la fidem_fw-la illu_z nondum_fw-la haereticum_fw-la dico_fw-la nisi_fw-la manifestatâ_fw-la sibi_fw-la doctrinâ_fw-la catholicae_fw-la fidei_fw-la resistere_fw-la maluerit_fw-la &_o illud_fw-la quod_fw-la tenebat_fw-la elegerit_fw-la etc._n etc._n §_o 19_o and_o this_o be_v dr._n hammonds_n comment_n on_o the_o forequote_v place_n of_o titus_n how_o consonant_n to_o his_o own_o or_o other_o protestant_n doctrine_n i_o know_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 761._o 〈◊〉_d p._n 761._o self-condemned_n signify_v not_o a_o man_n public_a accuse_v or_o condemn_v his_o own_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n for_o that_o self-condemnation_n be_v a_o effect_n and_o part_n of_o repentance_n will_v rather_o be_v a_o motive_n to_o free_v any_o from_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v already_o under_o they_o then_o aggravate_v their_o crime_n or_o bring_v that_o punishment_n upon_o they_o nor_o yet_o 2_o can_v it_o denote_v he_o that_o offend_v and_o yet_o still_o continue_v to_o offend_v against_o conscience_n and_o though_o he_o be_v in_o the_o wrong_n yet_o hold_v out_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o church_n for_o beside_o that_o there_o be_v very_o few_o that_o do_v so_o and_o these_o know_v to_o none_o but_o god_n and_o if_o that_o be_v the_o character_n of_o a_o heretic_n than_o none_o but_o hypocrite_n will_v be_v heretic_n and_o he_o that_o through_o pride_n and_o opinion_n of_o his_o own_o judgement_n stand_v out_o against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n in_o the_o pure_a time_n shall_v not_o be_v a_o heretic_n this_o inconvenience_n will_v further_o be_v incur_v that_o no_o heretic_n can_v possible_o be_v admonish_v or_o censure_v by_o the_o church_n for_o no_o man_n will_v acknowledge_v of_o himself_o that_o what_o he_o do_v be_v by_o he_o do_v against_o his_o own_o conscience_n nor_o can_v any_o testimony_n be_v produce_v against_o he_o before_o any_o humane_a tribunal_n no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o search_v the_o heart_n it_o be_v rather_o a_o expression_n of_o his_o separation_n from_o and_o disobedience_n to_o the_o church_n and_o so_o a_o evidence_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v pervert_v and_o sin_v wilful_o and_o without_o excuse_n for_o he_o that_o thus_o disobey_v and_o break_v off_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n do_v in_o effect_n inflict_v that_o punishment_n on_o himself_o which_o the_o church_n use_v to_o malefactor_n that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 2_o cor._n 13.10_o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n which_o when_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o therein_o a_o schismatic_a also_o do_v voluntary_o without_o the_o judge_n sentence_n his_o very_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v a_o spontaneous_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o excision_n and_o that_o this_o doctor_n may_v not_o go_v alone_o see_v dr._n fernes_n comment_n on_o the_o same_o place_n 53._o place_n the_o case_n between_o the_o ch._n of_o engl._n and_o rome_n p._n 53._o when_o he_o write_v against_o presbyterian_o accuse_v they_o of_o schism_n from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o word_n heretic_n say_v he_o according_a to_o the_o use_n of_o it_o then_o imply_v one_o that_o obstinate_o stand_v out_o against_o the_o church_n or_o that_o lead_v any_o sect_n after_o the_o strict_a sect_n or_o heresy_n of_o the_o pharisee_n act_n 26.5_o after_z that_o which_o they_o call_v heresy_n act_v 24.14_o a_o factious_a company_n divide_v from_o the_o church_n so_o they_o call_v or_o account_v of_o christian_n and_o gal._n 5.20_o we_o have_v it_o reckon_v among_o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n debate_n contention_n heresy_n so_o here_o heretic_n that_o lead_v a_o faction_n a_o sect_n or_o that_o wilful_o follow_v or_o abet_n it_o a_o man_n therefore_o that_o be_v a_o heretic_n contentious_a disobedient_a to_o the_o order_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n reject_v for_o he_o be_v self_n condemn_v have_v both_o past_a the_o sentence_n upon_o himself_o by_o profess_v against_o or_o divide_v from_o the_o church_n and_o also_o do_v execution_n like_o that_o of_o the_o church_n censure_n and_o excommunication_n upon_o himself_o by_o actual_a separation_n or_o go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n a_o fearful_a condition_n thus_o he_o and_o something_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n say_v dr._n hammond_n 4._o hammond_n of_o fundamental_o c._n 9_o §._o 4._o concern_v the_o guilt_n of_o those_o who_o afterward_o deny_v or_o oppose_v the_o thing_n define_v and_o add_v to_o the_o apostle_n creed_n by_o the_o first_o council_n though_o the_o creed_n say_v he_o in_o the_o ancient_a apostolic_a form_n be_v sufficient_a for_o any_o man_n to_o believe_v and_o profess_v yet_o when_o the_o church_n have_v think_v meet_a to_o erect_v that_o additional_a bulwark_n against_o heretic_n the_o reject_v or_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o those_o their_o addition_n may_v just_o be_v deem_v a_o interpretative_a side_v with_o those_o ancient_a or_o a_o desire_n to_o introduce_v some_o new_a heresy_n and_o the_o pride_n or_o singularity_n or_o heretical_a design_n of_o oppose_v or_o question_v they_o now_o they_o be_v frame_v be_v irreconcilable_a with_o christian_a charity_n and_o humility_n be_v just_o deem_v criminous_a and_o liable_a to_o censure_n again_o §_o 6._o though_o those_o who_o believe_v etc._n etc._n the_o matter_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n have_v all_o those_o branch_n of_o christian_a faith_n which_o be_v require_v to_o qualify_v mankind_n to_o submit_v to_o christ_n reformation_n yet_o he_o grant_v the_o wilful_a oppose_v these_o more_o explicit_a article_n add_v by_o council_n and_o the_o resist_n of_o they_o when_o they_o be_v competent_o propose_v from_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n will_v bring_v danger_n of_o ruin_n on_o such_o person_n again_o §_o 8._o this_o i_o of_o one_o baptism_n and_o all_o the_o former_a addition_n in_o the_o nicene_n creed_n be_v thus_o settle_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v and_o still_o be_v in_o all_o reason_n without_o dispute_v to_o be_v receive_v and_o embrace_v by_o the_o present_a church_n and_o every_o meek_a member_n thereof_o here_o than_o it_o seem_v that_o heresy_n it_o be_v or_o something_o criminous_a equivalent_a thereto_o to_o oppose_v the_o church_n definition_n and_o addition_n though_o the_o former_a creed_n be_v sufficient_a to_o have_v be_v believe_v and_o profess_v in_o all_o time_n before_o they_o last_o king_n james_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o card._n perron_n pen_v by_o casaubon_n seem_v to_o have_v the_o same_o notion_n of_o heresy_n as_o also_o of_o schism_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o father_n make_v heresy_n any_o depart_n from_o the_o faith_n schism_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n credit_v vero_fw-la rex_fw-la say_v casaubon_n perron_n casaubon_n letter_n to_o perron_n simpliciter_fw-la sine_fw-la fuco_fw-la &_o fallaciis_fw-la unicam_fw-la esse_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o re_fw-mi &_o nomine_fw-la catholicam_fw-la sive_fw-la vniversalem_fw-la toto_fw-la diffusam_fw-la mundo_fw-la extra_fw-la quam_fw-la ipse_fw-la quoque_fw-la nullam_fw-la salutem_fw-la debere_fw-la sperari_fw-la affirmat_fw-la damnat_fw-la &_o detestatur_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la vel_fw-la jam_fw-la olim_fw-la vel_fw-la postea_fw-la aut_fw-la a_o fide_fw-la recesserunt_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la &_o facti_fw-la sunt_fw-la haeretici_fw-la aut_fw-la à_fw-la communione_fw-la &_o facti_fw-la sunt_fw-la schismatici_fw-la difference_n hear_v about_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n there_o be_v some_o but_o none_o that_o all_o opposition_n of_o its_o faith_n be_v heresy_n again_o nullam_fw-la spem_fw-la salutis_fw-la superesse_fw-la iis_fw-la qui_fw-la à_fw-la fide_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la aut_fw-la ab_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la communione_fw-la discesserint_fw-la rex_fw-la ultro_fw-la concedit_fw-la i_o suppose_v here_o be_v mean_v the_o present_a catholic_n church_n and_o in_o any_o difference_n the_o main_a body_n thereof_o its_o whole_a and_o integral_a faith_n or_o any_o part_n thereof_o and_o its_z external_a communion_n otherwise_o if_o this_o mean_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n collectively_o of_o all_o age_n when_o in_o some_o age_n several_z points_z of_o faith_n be_v not_o yet_o define_v and_o of_o every_o member_n thereof_o in_o those_o age_n when_o in_o most_o point_n may_v be_v find_v some_o dissenter_n and_o of_o point_n of_o faith_n necessary_a inferior_n be_v judge_n a_o term_n apply_v as_o any_o one_o please_v to_o more_o point_n or_o few_o last_o of_o communion_n internal_a which_o may_v be_v say_v now_o to_o be_v desert_v now_o retain_v as_o any_o
no_o agreement_n or_o union_n from_o the_o common_a superior_n of_o they_o both_o and_o so_o long_o as_o one_o part_n divide_v not_o from_o the_o other_o in_o any_o thing_n wherein_o the_o other_o agree_v with_o the_o whole_a against_o it_o or_o which_o the_o whole_a enjoin_v both_o to_o the_o other_o and_o it_o but_o in_o such_o case_n the_o division_n of_o this_o part_n be_v as_o from_o the_o other_o part_n so_o from_o the_o who_o and_o so_o become_v for_o its_o division_n from_o the_o whole_a and_o not_o from_o the_o other_o part_n schismatical_a 2_o lie_n they_o grant_v also_o that_o one_o part_n may_v lawful_o and_o without_o schism_n separate_a or_o rather_o absent_v itself_o from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o another_o so_o often_o as_o either_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o other_o part_n suspect_v of_o heresiae_fw-la or_o schism_n before_o any_o evidence_n of_o the_o contrary_n be_v think_v unlawful_a or_o as_o this_o part_n require_v some_o condition_n of_o its_o external_a communion_n to_o which_o the_o other_o be_v not_o by_o the_o whole_a or_o by_o the_o superior_n of_o both_o any_o way_n oblige_v thus_o the_o catholic_n chap._n iu._n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o protestant_n after_o the_o four_o first_o proposition_n concede_v thus_o proceed_v to_o qualify_v they_o 5._o in_o their_o grant_v the_o catholic_n church_n unerrable_a in_o necessary_n understand_v thereby_o only_o such_o few_o point_n without_o which_o salvation_n no_o way_n attainable_a §_o 24._o 6._o affirm_v the_o church_n catholic_n or_o all_o particular_a church_n of_o some_o one_o age_n or_o age_n errable_a in_o several_a other_o doctrine_n dangerous_a to_o salvation_n gross_a damnable_a etc._n etc._n §_o 25._o because_o it_o appear_v that_o many_o of_o the_o chief_a point_n from_o which_o protestant_n dissent_v be_v the_o general_a tenant_n and_o practice_n at_o the_o come_n of_o luther_n §_o 26._o 7.8_o affirm_v *_o the_o church_n general_n council_n also_o when_o universal_o accept_v to_o be_v unerring_a in_o necessary_n but_o not_o so_o in_o other_o and_o that_o be_v in_o the_o most_o point_n and_o in_o the_o former_a 1_o extend_v universal_a acceptation_n to_o all_o particular_a church_n and_o 2_o restrain_v necessary_n as_o before_o to_o those_o absolute_o so_o again_o *_o the_o council_n not_o so_o accept_v to_o be_v errable_a also_o in_o necessary_n §_o 34.35_o 36._o 9.10_o allow_v obedience_n also_o due_a to_o the_o definition_n and_o decree_n of_o such_o council_n but_o not_o that_o of_o assent_n but_o only_o of_o noncontradiction_n §_o 39_o where_o of_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o obedience_n yield_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o the_o four_o first_o council_n §_o 40._o 11._o of_o non_fw-fr contradiction_n not_o general_o but_o where_o the_o error_n of_o the_o council_n not_o manifest_a and_o intolerable_a §_o 43._o claim_v also_o where_o the_o error_n manifest_a a_o power_n against_o such_o council_n to_o reform_v it_o for_o themselves_o §_o 44._o 12._o the_o judgement_n also_o as_o for_o themselves_o when_o there_o be_v or_o be_v not_o such_o error_n in_o council_n leave_v to_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n §_o 47._o §_o 24_o but_o the_o protestant_n after_o concede_v the_o four_o first_o proposition_n labour_v to_o pull_v down_o these_o superstructure_n of_o the_o catholic_n which_o they_o see_v else_o will_v ruin_v their_o cause_n and_o thus_o proceed_v after_o the_o first_o four_o proposition_n above_o agree_v on_o 5_o lie_n they_o explain_v themselves_o that_o by_o the_o necessary_n wherein_o prop._n 2_o they_o grant_v the_o catholic_n church_n of_o all_o age_n unerrable_a they_o understand_v only_o those_o few_o point_n speak_v of_o before_o disc_n 2._o prop._n 6._o without_o the_o explicit_a belief_n of_o which_o salvation_n be_v not_o at_o all_o attainable_a for_o in_o their_o say_n that_o she_o be_v so_o unerrable_a they_o thus_o declare_v themselves_o that_o there_o always_o shall_v be_v a_o number_n of_o man_n profess_v christianity_n in_o the_o world_n so_o mr._n stillingfleet_n 251._o stillingfleet_n stillingf_n p._n 251._o a_o company_n of_o man_n that_o profess_v at_o least_o so_o much_o truth_n as_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o their_o salvation_n so_o mr._n chillingworth_n 15._o chillingworth_n p._n 15._o that_o christ_n do_v and_o will_v so_o defend_v his_o church_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v forever_o till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n a_o church_n christian_n on_o the_o earth_n so_o dr._n hammond_n 23._o hammond_n defence_n of_o lord_n fulkland_n c._n 1._o §._o 5.6_o p._n 23._o no_o more_o inerrability_n in_o faith_n you_o see_v here_o affirm_v than_o that_o without_o which_o salvation_n be_v absolute_o on_o what_o term_n soever_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n not_o attainable_a wherein_o they_o straiten_v christ_n promise_n as_o the_o catholic_n enlarge_v they_o by_o which_o they_o gain_v the_o liberty_n of_o reform_v as_o they_o think_v fit_a from_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o god_n as_o to_o some_o age_n or_o age_n in_o most_o of_o her_o doctrine_n as_o they_o grant_v she_o not_o save_v in_o some_o few_o necessary_n unerrable_a that_o may_v as_o it_o be_v still_o preserve_v life_n in_o she_o neither_o will_v they_o concern_v this_o question_n what_o be_v point_n necessary_a wherein_o our_o lord_n have_v promise_v a_o indefectibility_n to_o his_o church_n what_o not_o by_o any_o mean_n stand_v to_o her_o judgement_n §_o 25_o 6_o lie_n they_o say_v ‖_o that_o though_o the_o church-catholick_n be_v preserve_v always_o from_o error_n in_o absolute_a necessary_n take_v in_o their_o sense_n §_o 24_o for_o otherwise_o there_o will_v cease_v to_o be_v a_o church_n of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n yet_o the_o same_o church_n or_o at_o least_o any_o or_o all_o particular_a church_n of_o some_o age_n or_o age_n some_o one_o or_o many_o or_o all_o which_o particular_a church_n must_v be_v the_o visible_a universal_a church-catholick_n of_o that_o age_n or_o age_n may_v general_o hold_v and_o the_o governor_n thereof_o impose_v upon_o their_o subject_n such_o error_n and_o corruption_n as_o be_v dangerous_a to_o salvation_n gross_a damnable_a etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o which_o upon_o a_o general_a reformation_n neglect_v be_v corrigible_a and_o reformable_a by_o any_o particular_a church_n for_o itself_o see_v what_o archbishop_n laud_n §_o 26_o §_o 37._o n._n 5.6_o mr._n stillingfleet_n part_v 2._o c._n 2._o p._n 330._o and_z c._n 4._o p._n 370.371_o and_z c._n 8._o p._n 478_o 479._o mr._n chillingworth_n c._n 5._o §_o 64.49_o 45_o 27._o and_o the_o 31_o st_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v say_v to_o this_o purpose_n §_o 27_o and_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o assertion_n seem_v to_o be_v because_o these_o great_a point_n of_o modern_a controversy_n §_o 28_o 1._o a_o corporal_a presence_n and_o a_o transubstantiation_n or_o substantial_a conversion_n of_o the_o element_n into_o christ_n body_n §_o 29_o 2._o adoration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n i._n e._n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n as_o present_v in_o it_o which_o follow_v from_o the_o former_a §_o 30_o 3._o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n not_o only_o that_o of_o prayer_n praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n nor_o only_o of_o the_o mystery_n in_o the_o consecrate_v of_o they_o offer_v as_o a_o commemorative_n of_o the_o passion_n a_o thing_n concede_v also_o by_o learned_a protestant_n but_o also_o of_o the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o these_o mystery_n which_o thing_n follow_v from_o the_o first_o point_n offer_v in_o this_o service_n pro_fw-la vivis_fw-la &_o defunctis_fw-la etc._n etc._n 4._o invocation_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o saint_n §_o 31_o and_o 5._o such_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a as_o infer_v their_o present_a condition_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n whatever_o their_o restraint_n or_o suffering_n be_v to_o be_v conceive_v better_o able_a by_o the_o intercession_n of_o the_o live_n do_v appear_v to_o have_v be_v universal_o hold_v and_o practise_v and_o the_o approbation_n and_o conformity_n to_o they_o impose_v by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n both_o of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n at_o the_o come_n of_o luther_n §_o 32_o the_o clearning_n of_o which_o because_o it_o be_v a_o consideration_n of_o great_a importance_n and_o not_o meet_v to_o be_v omit_v nor_o can_v be_v here_o insert_v without_o make_v too_o great_a a_o parenthesis_n and_o distract_n your_o thought_n from_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n i_o have_v rather_o choose_v to_o annex_v it_o at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o discourse_n cap._n 11._o §_o 158._o refer_v you_o to_o that_o place_n for_o the_o perusal_n thereof_o if_o not_o in_o this_o matter_n already_o satisfy_v §_o 33_o this_o then_o concern_v the_o 6_o the_o proposition_n the_o protestant_n affirm_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o some_o age_n may_v incur_v and_o maintain_v dangerous_a
chillingw_o 59_o chillingw_o p._n 59_o if_o through_o his_o own_o default_n any_o man_n judge_v amiss_o he_o alone_o shall_v suffer_v for_o it_o and_o such_o person_n endanger_v both_o his_o temporal_a and_o eternal_a happiness_n 100_o happiness_n p._n 100_o well_o for_o such_o person_n at_o their_o peril_n be_v it_o §_o 50_o but_o meanwhile_o how_o be_v the_o church_n peace_n or_o her_o wholesome_a or_o also_o necessary_a and_o fundamental_a doctrine_n to_o be_v preserve_v among_o her_o subject_n how_o these_o poor_a sheep_n deliver_v from_o harken_v to_o and_o be_v seduce_v by_o these_o new_a demonstrator_n if_o such_o public_a contradictor_n may_v not_o just_o be_v punish_v and_o restrain_v by_o she_o or_o how_o may_v they_o just_o be_v restrain_v if_o all_o aught_o to_o be_v leave_v to_o judge_v according_a to_o the_o pandect_n of_o the_o divine_a law_n because_o each_o member_n of_o the_o christian_a society_n be_v bind_v take_v care_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n that_o tend_v thereto_o as_o mr._n stillingfleet_n tell_v we_o 133._o we_o p._n 133._o how_o restrain_v i_o mean_v even_o as_o to_o external_a obedience_n or_o silence_n if_o the_o judgement_n when_o or_o in_o what_o thing_n her_o council_n intolerable_o err_v be_v right_o leave_v to_o they_o and_o if_o so_o often_o as_o they_o judge_v they_o to_o err_v and_o persuade_v themselves_o they_o have_v demonstration_n for_o it_o they_o may_v lawful_o contradict_v can_v the_o church-governor_n just_o punish_v luther_n and_o he_o just_o do_v that_o for_o which_o he_o be_v punish_v well_o to_o give_v some_o satisfaction_n also_o to_o this_o the_o preserve_n of_o the_o church_n peace_n thus_o go_v on_o mr._n stillingfleet_n we_o appeal_v say_v he_o 340._o he_o p._n 340._o to_o the_o common_a reason_n of_o mankind_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o a_o far_o probable_a way_n to_o end_v controversy_n to_o persuade_v they_o in_o disputable_a matter_n to_o yield_v external_a obedience_n to_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n than_o to_o tell_v they_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v whatever_o they_o decree_v to_o be_v infallible_o true_a but_o here_o he_o hide_v and_o nimble_o pass_v over_o one_o half_a and_o the_o more_o scandalous_a part_n of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o that_o which_o usher_v in_o the_o reformation_n that_o where_o a_o doctrine_n of_o a_o general_n council_n be_v intolerable_a where_o it_o seem_v to_o any_o not_o a_o matter_n disputable_a but_o error_n manifest_a of_o which_o he_o know_v who_o must_v judge_v and_o how_o many_o of_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n before_o the_o time_n of_o luther_n be_v by_o protestant_n charge_v to_o be_v so_o so_o that_o such_o error_n be_v not_o to_o be_v number_v among_o the_o raro_fw-la contigentia_fw-la 535._o contigentia_fw-la see_v mr._n stillingfl_fw-mi p._n 535._o so_o often_o private_a man_n or_o particular_a church_n instead_o of_o yield_v the_o external_a obedience_n he_o here_o make_v show_v of_o may_v public_o contradict_v such_o council_n and_o reform_v i_o say_v not_o without_o they_o for_o that_o protestant_n 153._o protestant_n ap._n laud_n p._n 153._o do_v bring_v several_a proof_n or_o example_n in_o antiquity_n but_o against_o they_o for_o which_o they_o bring_v none_o chap._n v._n 13._o suitable_o to_o the_o precedent_n protestant_n declare_v heresy_n to_o be_v a_o error_n obstinate_o maintain_v against_o some_o fundamental_a article_n of_o the_o faith_n without_o allow_v any_o certain_a judge_n what_o article_n be_v fundamental_a and_o consequent_o what_o be_v heresy_n §_o 51._o 14._o declare_v schism_n in_o respect_n of_o inferior_n to_o be_v a_o separation_n causeless_a §_o 55._o or_o also_o as_o some_o more_o straiten_v it_o a_o separation_n in_o essential_o §_o 57_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o other_o church_n or_o of_o the_o church-catholick_n but_o leave_v we_o no_o certain_a judge_n what_o point_n be_v essential_o or_o when_o the_o separation_n causeless_a and_o consequent_o when_o schism_n unless_o perhaps_o he_o that_o separate_v be_v make_v by_o they_o this_o judge_n again_o enlarge_n schism_n to_o superior_n also_o so_o often_o as_o by_o require_v unjust_a condition_n of_o their_o communion_n they_o give_v their_o subject_n just_a cause_n of_o a_o separation_n §_o 61._o where_o be_v examine_v whether_o the_o ecclesiastical_a superior_n when_o depart_v from_o no_o other_o their_o superior_n can_v become_v in_o respect_n of_o their_o subject_n guilty_a of_o schism_n §_o 63._o n._n 1._o §_o 51_o 13._o la_v concern_v their_o state_v of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n 1_o st_o for_o heresy_n they_o do_v not_o enlarge_v it_o so_o far_o as_o catholic_n do_v 16._o do_v see_v before_o §._o 16._o to_o all_o error_n know_o or_o obstinate_o maintain_v against_o any_o church_n definition_n make_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o which_o help_v to_o remove_v the_o charge_n thereof_o the_o far_a from_o themselves_o restrain_v it_o 11._o it_o chill_n 271.332_o stillingf_n p._n 11._o only_o to_o those_o error_n that_o be_v against_o some_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o some_o fundamental_a article_n of_o faith_n or_o such_o as_o be_v plain_o reveal_v by_o god_n with_o a_o command_n that_o all_o shall_v believe_v it_o 12._o it_o chill_n p._n 332._o §._o 12._o or_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o essential_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n §_o 52_o which_o fundamental_o or_o necessary_n they_o will_v not_o allow_v to_o extend_v so_o far_o as_o to_o all_o the_o article_n contain_v in_o some_o of_o the_o creed_n 2._o creed_n see_v before_o §_o 41._o n._n 2._o and_o some_o fetter_v they_o with_o so_o many_o condition_n of_o a_o universal_a attestation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o all_o time_n as_o that_o scarce_o any_o former_a universal_o account_v heresy_n can_v be_v find_v to_o oppose_v a_o divine_a truth_n that_o be_v in_o every_o circumstance_n so_o qualify_v viz._n such_o condition_n as_o these_o 57_o these_o see_v still_o p._n 57_o that_o all_o catholic_n writer_n agree_v in_o such_o a_o doctrine_n and_o none_o of_o they_o opppose_v it_o and_o agree_v in_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o also_o to_o all_o christian_n and_o that_o no_o late_a writer_n and_o father_n in_o heat_n of_o contention_n and_o opposition_n of_o heretic_n judge_v it_o then_o a_o article_n more_o necessary_a than_o it_o be_v judge_v before_o that_o all_o writer_n that_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o christian_n deliver_v it_o not_o as_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o such_o as_o may_v be_v convince_v that_o it_o be_v divine_a revelation_n but_o as_o necessary_a also_o to_o be_v by_o all_o explicit_o believe_v that_o what_o all_o these_o writer_n consent_v in_o be_v also_o undoubted_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n of_o those_o age_n wherein_o they_o write_v last_o that_o it_o be_v make_v appear_v to_o be_v universal_o embrace_v at_o all_o time_n and_o all_o place_n by_o the_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o opposer_n thereof_o to_o have_v be_v present_o disow_v as_o any_o member_n of_o it_o somewhat_o a_o like_a caution_n bishop_n taylor_n have_v put_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o dissuasive_a 7._o dissuasive_a c._n 1._o §._o 1._o p._n 7._o to_o secure_a protestant_n from_o receive_v any_o detriment_n to_o their_o cause_n from_o the_o father_n and_o antiquity_n where_o after_o he_o have_v first_o collect_v that_o the_o roman_a tenant_n be_v not_o believe_v or_o practise_v in_o the_o three_o first_o age_n because_o the_o writer_n of_o those_o age_n few_o and_o compendious_a be_v silent_a therein_o which_o be_v a_o faulty_a negative_a argue_v though_o the_o antecedent_n be_v grant_v for_o true_a and_o then_o thus_o prejudicee_v the_o four_o age_n i.e._n the_o time_n of_o athanasius_n basil_n the_o three_o gregory_n chrysostom_n jerome_n ambrose_n austin_n the_o first_o general_n council_n and_o the_o first_o free_a exercise_n of_o religion_n and_o copious_a record_n thereof_o prejudice_v it_o i_o say_v and_o the_o age_n succeed_v that_o in_o those_o time_n secular_a interest_n do_v more_o prevail_v and_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n be_v vast_a and_o voluminous_a full_a of_o controversy_n and_o ambiguous_a sense_n fit_v to_o their_o own_o time_n and_o question_n full_a of_o proper_a opinion_n and_o such_o variety_n of_o say_n that_o both_o side_n eternal_o and_o inconfutable_o shall_v bring_v saying_n for_o themselves_o respective_o after_o such_o prejudices_fw-la i_o say_v he_o add_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o conclude_v from_o the_o say_n of_o a_o number_n of_o the_o father_n that_o their_o doctrine_n which_o they_o will_v prove_v thence_o be_v the_o catholic_n doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n because_o say_v he_o any_o number_n that_o be_v less_o than_o all_o do_v not_o prove_v a_o catholic_n consent_n and_o the_o
separation_n at_o all_o this_o concern_v some_o protestant_n restrain_v schism_n to_o culpable_a or_o causeless_a separation_n §_o 57_o again_o some_o of_o they_o there_o be_v who_o straiten_v schism_n yet_o far_o 424._o far_o see_v stillingf_n p._n 331.357.359_o 251_o 290._o compar_fw-la p._n 54.56_o whitby_n p._n 424._o and_o make_v it_o a_o separation_n only_o from_o other_o christian_n or_o church_n in_o such_o thing_n wherein_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o be_v unite_v with_o they_o which_o be_v thus_o far_o true_a then_z state_z this_o necessary_a union_n to_o consist_v only_o in_o the_o belief_n of_o those_o fundamental_a article_n of_o faith_n or_o doctrine_n which_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o essential_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n §_o 58_o where_o they_o hold_v it_o not_o schism_n to_o separate_v from_o all_o particular_a church_n of_o the_o present_a age_n for_o a_o doctrine_n universal_o hold_v and_o impose_v as_o a_o condition_n of_o their_o communion_n because_o they_o say_v a_o error_n may_v be_v so_o impose_v but_o only_a schism_n to_o separate_v from_o the_o primitive_a and_o universal_a church_n for_o doctrine_n 1_o st_z that_o can_v be_v make_v appear_v to_o have_v be_v catholic_n and_o universal_o receive_v in_o the_o manner_n express_v before_o §_o 52._o by_o the_o church_n of_o all_o age_n successive_o from_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o time_n of_o such_o separation_n and_o 2_o lie_n that_o can_v also_o be_v prove_v a_o doctrine_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o essential_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n *_o for_o the_o first_o of_o these_o mr._n stillingfleet_v word_n 371._o word_n p._n 371._o to_o this_o purpose_n in_o answer_n to_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o reform_v former_a catholic_n doctrine_n be_v it_o be_v not_o enough_o say_v he_o to_o prove_v any_o doctrine_n to_o be_v catholic_n that_o it_o be_v general_o receive_v by_o christian_a church_n in_o any_o one_o age_n but_o it_o must_v be_v make_v appear_v to_o have_v be_v so_o receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n not_o to_o say_v that_o a._n d._n 1517._o such_o and_o such_o doctrine_n be_v look_v on_o as_o catholic_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v so_o but_o that_o for_o 1517._o year_n successive_o from_o the_o apostle_n to_o that_o time_n they_o be_v judge_v to_o be_v so_o and_o then_o say_v he_o we_o shall_v more_o easy_o believe_v you_o and_o p._n 357._o he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o measure_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o or_o most_o of_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o such_o a_o age_n and_o *_o for_o the_o 2_o d._n in_o the_o 2_o d._n part_n c._n 2._o prove_a protestant_n not_o guilty_a of_o schism_n p._n 331._o he_o say_v whoso_o separate_v from_o any_o particular_a church_n much_o more_o from_o all_o for_o such_o thing_n without_o which_o that_o can_v be_v no_o church_n separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o he_o that_o separate_v only_o from_o particular_a church_n any_o or_o all_o as_o to_o such_o thing_n which_o concern_v not_o their_o be_v be_v only_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o those_o church_n not_o the_o catholic_n and_o therefore_o say_v he_o suppose_v that_o all_o particular_a church_n have_v some_o error_n and_o corruption_n in_o they_o though_o i_o shall_v separate_v from_o they_o all_o for_o such_o error_n but_o what_o if_o for_o some_o truth_n though_o this_o not_o fundamental_a i_o do_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n unless_o it_o be_v for_o something_o without_o which_o those_o can_v be_v no_o church_n and_o p._n 358._o no_o church_n can_v be_v charge_v with_o a_o separation_n from_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n but_o what_o may_v be_v prove_v to_o separate_v itself_o in_o something_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o so_o long_o as_o it_o do_v not_o separate_v as_o to_o these_o essential_o it_o can_v cease_v to_o be_v a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n this_o be_v free_o grant_v but_o what_o be_v these_o essential_o to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o church-catholick_n p._n 357._o he_o say_v that_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church-catholick_n lie_v open_a to_o all_o such_o who_o own_o the_o fundamental_o of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o p._n 251._o he_o say_v all_o that_o be_v mean_v by_o say_v that_o the_o present_a church_n he_o mean_v catholic_n be_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_o be_v that_o there_o shall_v always_o be_v a_o church_n for_o that_o which_o make_v they_o a_o church_n be_v the_o belief_n of_o fundamental_o and_o if_o they_o believe_v not_o they_o they_o cease_v to_o be_v so_o that_o therefore_o which_o be_v suppose_v a_o church_n be_v and_o be_v destroy_v it_o cease_v to_o be_v be_v the_o formal_a constitution_n of_o it_o but_o thus_o it_o be_v as_o to_o the_o church_n the_o belief_n of_o fundamental_o make_v it_o a_o church_n and_o the_o not_o belief_n of_o they_o make_v they_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o christian_a church_n well_o but_o what_o be_v these_o necessary_n or_o fundamental_o of_o the_o christian_a faith_n that_o we_o may_v know_v how_o long_o a_o person_n or_o church_n retain_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n see_v then_o concern_v this_o p._n 53._o 54_o 55._o these_o be_v such_o point_n say_v he_o as_o be_v require_v by_o god_n as_o necessary_a to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v by_o all_o in_o order_n to_o attain_v salvation_n and_o which_o be_v they_o p._n 56._o nothing_n ought_v to_o be_v require_v as_o a_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o have_v be_v believe_v and_o receive_v for_o such_o by_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o all_o age_n and_o afterward_o what_o have_v be_v admit_v into_o the_o ancient_a creed_n here_o than_o i_o take_v his_o tenent_n to_o be_v that_o not_o more_o be_v necessary_a to_o render_v any_o person_n or_o church_n free_a from_o schism_n and_o a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o continue_v in_o its_o communion_n than_o the_o true_a belief_n of_o all_o fundamental_o or_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v for_o attain_v salvation_n §_o 59_o but_o here_o also_o 1_o st_o these_o leave_v we_o uncertain_a how_o particular_o to_o know_v and_o distinguish_v these_o fundamental_o and_o essential_o wherein_o only_o be_v schism_n from_o other_o point_n that_o be_v not_o so_o or_o they_o do_v enfold_v they_o all_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o creed_n where_o also_o they_o contend_v that_o they_o must_v not_o be_v extend_v to_o all_o the_o article_n thereof_o whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o one_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n communion_n for_o require_v his_o assent_n as_o a_o condition_n thereof_o in_o respect_n of_o some_o of_o these_o article_n yet_o will_v be_v no_o schismatic_a as_o they_o state_n schism_n nor_o none_o asleep_o schismatic_a that_o be_v not_o even_o in_o a_o fundamental_a a_o heretic_n again_o since_o several_a doctrine_n there_o be_v that_o be_v deliver_v by_o all_o former_a age_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o fundamental_a or_o essential_a to_o salvation_n or_o to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n thus_o the_o separate_n from_o all_o particular_a church_n or_o from_o our_o spiritual_a superior_n for_o any_o doctrine_n take_v for_o such_o will_v not_o be_v schism_n so_o one_o that_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o superior_n for_o their_o require_v his_o assent_n and_o conformity_n to_o the_o episcopal_a government_n of_o the_o church_n though_o he_o be_v a_o schismatic_a in_o dr._n hammonds_n account_n 163._o account_n schism_n p._n 163._o yet_o must_v be_v none_o in_o mr._n stillingfleet_v unless_o he_o will_v make_v espiscopacy_n essential_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n concern_v which_o i_o refer_v you_o to_o his_o irenicum_fw-la and_o so_o pronounce_v the_o presbyterian_a and_o transmarine_a reform_a congregation_n no_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o any_o separate_v from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o his_o superior_n require_v of_o he_o consent_n and_o conformity_n to_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o first_o four_o allow_v general_a council_n and_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o the_o first_o and_o pure_a age_n whether_o in_o government_n or_o other_o the_o like_a observance_n and_o practice_n which_o separation_n be_v by_o dr._n hammond_n 160._o hammond_n schim_n p._n 156._o 160._o declare_v schism_n but_o can_v be_v so_o upon_o mr._n stillingfleet_v thesis_n unless_o all_o these_o will_v be_v maintain_v by_o he_o fundamental_o and_o essential_o to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n i_o mean_v as_o to_o faith_n necessary_a for_o her_o attain_v salvation_n last_o mr._n stillingfleet_n say_v 356._o say_v p._n 356._o a_o church_n enjoin_v some_o dangeron_n error_n as_o
while_o only_o a_o unjust_a excommunication_n pass_v there_o be_v no_o schism_n as_o yet_o this_o that_o the_o church-governor_n by_o a_o unjust_a excommunication_n do_v make_v no_o external_a division_n of_o themselves_o from_o the_o church_n catholic_n nor_o yet_o necessitate_v any_o active_a separation_n of_o other_o 4._o last_o neither_o do_v it_o hold_v 4._o §._o 63._o n_o 4._o that_o those_o governor_n do_v internal_o divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n catholic_n by_o every_o such_o act_n whereby_o they_o do_v external_o but_o not_o internal_o cut_v off_o another_o person_n innocent_a from_o it_o suppose_v indeed_o that_o after_o all_o such_o ecclesiastical_a excision_n whatever_o the_o two_o party_n can_v no_o long_o remain_v member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n this_o be_v most_o true_a that_o he_o as_o be_v innocent_a remain_v still_o a_o member_n of_o christ_n body_n they_o must_v cease_v to_o be_v so_o but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o the_o excommunication_n of_o a_o innocent_a may_v happen_v by_o many_o accident_n without_o any_o fault_n of_o the_o excommunicator_n or_o if_o a_o fault_n no_o mortal_a one_o and_o such_o as_o internal_o separate_v from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n thus_o much_o be_v say_v of_o the_o protestant_a notion_n of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n chap._n vi_o a_o reflection_n onthe_a former_a different_a thesis_n of_o the_o two_o church_n concern_v church-authority_n and_o the_o obedience_n due_a thereto_o §_o 64._o and_o a_o review_n which_o of_o they_o most_o resemble_v the_o ancient_a catholic_n church_n §_o 67._o the_o face_n *_o of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n church_n ibid._n *_o of_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n §_o 72._o *_o of_o the_o present_a protestant_a church_n §_o 76._o §_o 64_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o chief_a difference_n of_o the_o two_o church_n concern_v church-authority_n reflection_n reflection_n and_o the_o obedience_n due_a thereto_o where_o i_o think_v the_o disinterress_v and_o considerative_a may_v clear_o see_v 1_o st_o that_o for_o that_o wherein_o the_o archbishop_n and_o other_o have_v appear_v to_o catholic_n not_o able_a to_o extricate_v themselves_o viz._n in_o their_o maintain_v a_o church-authority_n for_o decide_v all_o controversy_n and_o suppress_v all_o sect_n and_o with_o it_o the_o liberty_n of_o inferiour_n public_o contradict_v and_o reform_v against_o this_o authority_n whenever_o in_o their_o judgement_n think_v manifest_o err_v mr._n still_v fleet_n be_v new_a defence_n have_v no_o way_n relieve_v they_o but_o leave_v their_o difficulty_n in_o their_o former_a state_n §_o 65_o 2ly_n that_o the_o one_o the_o catholic_n way_n here_o above_o mention_v maintain_v obedience_n and_o constant_a submission_n of_o private_a judgement_n and_o so_o tend_v effectual_o to_o preserve_v christian_a religion_n and_o faith_n still_o the_o same_o and_o unite_v as_o it_o descend_v through_o several_a age_n but_o the_o other_o maintain_v liberty_n of_o private_a judgement_n and_o so_o continual_o vary_v and_o divide_v it_o that_o the_o one_o build_v and_o set_v up_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n and_o its_o supreme_a tribunal_n the_o council_n the_o other_o by_o several_a way_n go_v about_o to_o weaken_v and_o frustrate_v it_o and_o they_o whilst_o it_o make_v council_n judge_n and_o decider_n of_o controversy_n and_o then_o private_a man_n judge_n whether_o the_o council_n have_v judge_v right_a or_o err_v in_o their_o decision_n and_o whilst_o by_o ask_v many_o question_n and_o move_v many_o scruple_n some_o of_o which_o i_o have_v set_v down_o below_o etc._n below_o §._o 86._o etc._n etc._n they_o *_o endeavour_v to_o make_v a_o general_n lawful_a obligatory_a council_n in_o the_o former_a age_n to_o be_v a_o thing_n very_o rare_a and_o difficult_a to_o be_v find_v or_o certain_o know_v have_v pastor_n &_o doctor_n meet_v in_o ecumenical_a council_n in_o all_o age_n i_o wish_v you_o can_v prove_v a_o true_o ecumenical_a council_n in_o any_o age_n say_v mr._n stillingfleet_n 253._o stillingfleet_n p._n 253._o and_o it_o be_v evident_a we_o never_o have_v a_o general_a council_n and_o a_o general_n council_n be_v a_o thing_n impossible_a say_v mr._n whitby_n 433._o whitby_n p._n 433._o and_o these_o and_o a_o hundred_o question_n more_o say_v he_o of_o the_o person_n appoint_v to_o call_v they_o of_o the_o place_n and_o the_o like_a may_v be_v insist_v on_o to_o show_v that_o general_a council_n be_v never_o institute_v by_o god_n for_o the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o when_o such_o council_n find_v *_o give_v they_o as_o little_a comfort_n or_o confidence_n in_o it_o by_o their_o take_v much_o pain_n and_o spend_v a_o great_a part_n of_o their_o book_n to_o show_v and_o prove_v the_o liability_n of_o these_o council_n to_o error_n even_o in_o fundamental_o all_o which_o be_v but_o the_o tell_v a_o intelligent_a disintere_v person_n that_o neither_o such_o council_n as_o can_v heretofore_o be_v assemble_v have_v be_v their_o friend_n nor_o the_o future_a be_v hope_v to_o be_v so_o §_o 66_o last_o they_o may_v see_v that_o if_o the_o former_a the_o roman-catholick_n way_n be_v take_v all_o or_o most_o of_o those_o controversy_n between_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n have_v be_v decide_v by_o those_o council_n which_o before_o the_o time_n of_o luther_n the_o whole_a western_a church_n in_o which_o the_o controversy_n arise_v unanimous_o accept_v and_o allow_v a_o instance_n have_v be_v make_v in_o the_o 1_o st_z disc_n §_o 57_o touch_v transubstantiation_n or_o also_o several_a of_o they_o by_o the_o very_a public_a service_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n a_o service_n as_o universal_o accept_v as_o the_o council_n but_o if_o the_o late_a the_o protestant_n way_n be_v take_v these_o controversy_n must_v still_o remain_v and_o the_o way_n be_v open_a for_o any_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n according_a to_o their_o apprehension_n of_o the_o magnitude_n of_o the_o church_n error_n and_o of_o their_o certainty_n of_o this_o to_o raise_v more_o till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n there_o remain_v yet_o two_o thing_n that_o seem_v necessary_a to_o be_v add_v before_o i_o conclude_v the_o discourse_n 1_o the_o one_o a_o brief_a survey_n of_o the_o different_a constitution_n and_o complexion_n of_o these_o two_o present_a church_n compare_v with_o the_o ancient_a and_o primitive_a to_o see_v which_o of_o they_o more_o resemble_v she_o and_o which_o seem_v rather_o to_o be_v her_o true_a daughter_n to_o who_o both_o pretend_v as_o their_o mother_n that_o we_o may_v not_o demur_v to_o render_v ourselves_o whole_o to_o her_o conduct_n on_o who_o we_o perceive_v to_o have_v descend_v the_o vigour_n spirit_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n 1_o the_o other_o a_o removal_n of_o and_o vindication_n of_o she_o from_o those_o many_o objection_n and_o article_n that_o be_v draw_v up_o against_o she_o why_o she_o can_v afford_v to_o any_o that_o certain_a direction_n and_o salvifical_a security_n which_o they_o expect_v from_o she_o for_o the_o perfect_a discovery_n then_o of_o the_o former_a of_o these_o 1_o st_z if_o we_o look_v back_o 1_o to_o the_o scripture_n §_o 67_o and_o 2_o to_o the_o primitive_a time_n to_o discern_v if_o we_o can_v from_o thence_o catholic_n a_o review_n of_o the_o two_o present_a opposite_a church_n which_o most_o resemble_v the_o ancient_a catholic_n in_o this_o present_a division_n of_o church_n which_o of_o they_o rather_o have_v the_o true_a note_n and_o mark_n of_o the_o church-catholick_n we_o find_v the_o evangelical_n church_n describe_v in_o the_o one_o and_o act_v in_o the_o other_o with_o very_o great_a authority_n and_o most_o sacred_a majesty_n of_o his_o evangelical_n successor_n that_o he_o leave_v behind_o he_o our_o lord_n pronounce_v he_o that_o hear_v you_o church_n 1._o the_o face_n of_o the_o ancient_n catholic_n church_n hear_v i_o luk._n 10.16_o and_o if_o any_o man_n hear_v you_o not_o in_fw-la matter_n of_o controversy_n bring_v before_o you_o let_v he_o be_v as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n matt._n 18.17_o of_o these_o he_o declare_v quae_fw-la ligaverity_n &_o solveritis_fw-la super_fw-la terram_fw-la erunt_fw-la ligata_fw-la etc._n etc._n &_o in_o caelum_fw-la matt._n 18.18_o and_o quorum_fw-la peccata_fw-la solveritis_fw-la aut_fw-la retinueritis_fw-la remittentur_fw-la etc._n etc._n jo._n 20.23_o of_o this_o church_n it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v *_o a_n city_n place_v on_o a_o hill_n and_o a_o candle_n put_v on_o a_o candlestick_n and_o not_o cover_v under_o a_o bushel_n matt._n 5._o *_o the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n 1._o tim._n 3.15_o and_o the_o foundation_n of_o god_n which_o stand_v ever_o sure_o 2._o tim._n 2.19_o *_o a_o uniform_a building_n raise_v upon_o its_o corner_n stone_n christ_n ephes_n 2.21_o and_o *_o he_o body_n with_o joint_n and_o ligament_n derive_v nourishment_n one_o from_o another_o firm_o knit_v together_o under_o its_o head_n christ_n col._n 2.19_o
the_o present_a roman_a church_n where_o christian_a religion_n now_o as_o ancient_o enjoy_v its_o freedom_n to_o see_v which_o of_o they_o resemble_v the_o constitution_n aspect_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n church_n we_o find_v they_o of_o a_o very_a different_a temper_n proportion_n and_o pretension_n one_o of_o they_o by_o much_o the_o great_a and_o through_o the_o universe_n most_o dilate_a body_n and_o communion_n that_o be_v in_o christianity_n i_o mean_v such_o as_o be_v unite_v in_o the_o same_o government_n law_n faith_n and_o discipline_n with_o a_o certain_a subordination_n of_o all_o the_o member_n and_o officer_n thereof_o one_o under_o ecclesiastical_a head_n so_o that_o if_o we_o suppose_v the_o church-catholick_n where_o be_v many_o divide_a christian_a society_n or_o confederacy_n separate_v from_o one_o another_o in_o their_o communion_n to_o be_v but_o one_o unanimous_a body_n of_o they_o concern_v which_o see_v 2_o disc_n §_o 26._o n._n 1._o §_o 27._o n._n 3._o and_o it_o again_o to_o be_v for_o universality_n the_o great_a of_o those_o body_n this_o must_v be_v it_o and_o again_o if_o we_o suppose_v a_o general_n council_n assemble_v of_o all_o these_o its_o vote_n will_v have_v the_o predominancy_n over_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n take_v a_o part_n and_o in_o any_o conjunction_n of_o they_o all_o in_o such_o a_o meeting_n it_o may_v reasonable_o be_v imagine_v from_o the_o agreement_n which_o the_o most_o considerable_a of_o the_o other_o church_n have_v with_o it_o in_o most_o of_o the_o western_a controversy_n that_o in_o vote_v they_o its_o party_n will_v be_v increase_v soon_o than_o any_o other_o §_o 73_o again_o this_o great_a body_n also_o we_o find_v have_v continue_v to_o this_o day_n unite_v to_o and_o join_v with_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n like_o that_o church-catholick_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n and_o we_o find_v it_o use_v its_o authority_n still_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o then_o do_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n still_o pretend_v itself_o upon_o our_o saviour_n promise_n in_o its_o supreme_a council_n join_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o chair_n a_o certain_a and_o infallible_a guide_n in_o the_o determination_n of_o all_o necessary_a faith_n to_o who_o all_o its_o subject_n owe_v not_o only_a silence_n but_o submission_n of_o judgement_n and_o belief_n we_o find_v it_o from_o time_n to_o time_n as_o the_o ancient_a church_n when_o any_o new_a controversy_n opinion_n and_o sect_n arise_v any_o way_n dangerous_a make_v new_a definition_n and_o more_o explication_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o enlarge_n from_o age_n to_o age_n for_o which_o also_o its_o adversary_n complain_v of_o it_o the_o particular_a and_o explicit_a knowledge_n and_o profession_n thereof_o among_o her_o child_n as_o the_o heterodox_n grow_v more_o particular_a and_o multiplicious_a in_o those_o error_n that_o will_v any_o way_n undermine_v it_o as_o also_o ancient_o the_o nicene_n creed_n be_v think_v a_o necessary_a supply_n to_o the_o apostolic_a and_o again_o the_o large_a athanasian_n to_o the_o nicene_n creed_n and_o these_o her_o definition_n now_o as_o then_o she_o pass_v under_o anathema_n to_o opposer_n or_o dissenter_n declare_v heretic_n still_o as_o they_o be_v esteem_v ancient_o such_o as_o oppose_v they_o because_o such_o after_o they_o judge_v to_o be_v now_o wilful_o and_o contumacious_o err_v and_o schismatic_n such_o as_o depart_v on_o what_o cause_n soever_o from_o her_o communion_n as_o vindicate_v to_o herself_o compound_v in_o her_o supreme_a representative_a of_o all_o those_o particular_a church_n that_o remain_v undivided_a from_o s._n peter_n chair_n the_o true_a title_n and_o right_a of_o the_o catholic_n church_n §_o 74_o again_o upon_o the_o same_o ground_n and_o as_o authorize_v immediate_o by_o our_o lord_n we_o find_v she_o hold_v herself_o oblige_v and_o take_v upon_o she_o to_o give_v and_o promulgate_v her_o law_n in_o matter_n clear_o spiritual_a and_o divine_a secular_a power_n whether_o favour_v or_o frown_v to_o all_o her_o subject_n however_o disperse_v in_o several_a temporal_a dominion_n presume_v still_o and_o think_v great_a reason_n for_o it_o to_o use_v as_o much_o spiritual_a authority_n in_o their_o state_n when_o prince_n a_o e_o become_v christian_n and_o her_o son_n as_o all_o grant_v she_o lawful_o to_o have_v do_v when_o they_o be_v yet_o heathen_a and_o her_o enemy_n we_o find_v she_o also_o press_v this_o obedience_n to_o her_o decree_n on_o her_o child_n not_o *_o from_o promise_v as_o s._n austin_n 1._o austin_n de_fw-fr utilit_fw-la credendi_fw-la c._n 1._o say_v the_o manichee_n ancient_o do_v which_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o his_o writing_n his_o book_n de_fw-fr utilitate_fw-la credendi_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la before_o that_o the_o thing_n we_o believe_v be_v prove_v to_o we_o evident_a proof_n or_o demonstration_n though_o these_o be_v not_o want_v but_o *_o from_o her_o authority_n and_o commission_n receive_v from_o our_o lord_n to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n she_o think_v necessary_a and_o *_o from_o the_o traditive_a sense_n of_o holy_a scripture_n deliver_v to_o she_o from_o her_o forefather_n and_o so_o also_o it_o be_v in_o this_o church_n that_o her_o subject_n as_o soon_o as_o any_o thing_n be_v clear_v to_o they_o to_o be_v the_o church_n doctrine_n dispute_v it_o no_o far_o but_o present_o resign_v their_o judgement_n thereto_o and_o 1._o and_o 75._o n._n 1._o as_o we_o find_v it_o publish_v with_o great_a authority_n its_o law_n to_o all_o its_o subject_n and_o member_n where_o ever_o reside_v so_o also_o by_o our_o lord_n order_n mat_n 28.19_o diligent_o send_v forth_o its_o mission_n into_o all_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n among_o stranger_n and_o those_o out_o of_o its_o fold_n whether_o infidel_n or_o heretic_n for_o convert_v or_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o christian_a and_o catholic_n faith_n and_o to_o this_o body_n and_o that_o since_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o first_o when_o also_o it_o be_v muchwhat_a the_o same_o as_o it_o be_v now_o do_v most_o of_o the_o northern_a nation_n owe_v their_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n and_o at_o that_o time_n our_o ancestor_n among_o the_o rest_n under_o ethelbert_n and_o his_o successor_n receive_v that_o roman_a profession_n of_o religion_n which_o 900._o year_n after_o under_o edward_n the_o six_o they_o cast_v off_o and_o by_o the_o same_o indefatigable_a zeal_n labour_n and_o suffering_n of_o its_o missioner_n be_v still_o those_o great_a conversion_n of_o mahometan_n and_o heathen_n make_v both_o in_o the_o west_n and_o east-indies_n and_o southern_a part_n of_o africa_n not_o to_o insist_v here_o on_o the_o late_a reduction_n of_o some_o of_o the_o christian_a sect_n also_o of_o the_o northern_a and_o eastern_a part_n to_o the_o roman_a communion_n where_v in_o call_v to_o mind_n god_n gracious_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v preach_v to_o all_o nation_n 13.10_o nation_n mat._n 24.14_o mark_n 13.10_o and_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o gentile_n to_o be_v bring_v into_o his_o fold_n 11._o fold_n rom._n 11._o which_o we_o see_v both_o heretofore_o and_o at_o the_o present_a to_o be_v effect_v sole_o or_o principal_o by_o this_o body_n through_o great_a hazard_n and_o much_o expense_n of_o its_o blood_n i_o desire_v all_o sober_a person_n to_o consider_v whether_o the_o good_a god_n have_v thus_o promise_v to_o the_o nation_n bread_n *_o will_v give_v they_o instead_o thereof_o but_o a_o stone_n and_o have_v promise_v they_o the_o revelation_n of_o his_o truth_n yet_o *_o will_v not_o send_v it_o to_o they_o but_o abase_v and_o mix_v with_o a_o manifold_a idolatry_n as_o protestant_n imagine_v the_o worship_v of_o dead_a man_n and_o of_o a_o breaden_a god_n and_o these_o bring_v in_o among_o they_o by_o antichrist_n himself_o if_o the_o head_n of_o these_o missioner_n the_o pope_n be_v so_o thus_o only_o satan_n fight_v against_o satan_n and_o popery_n against_o heathenism_n *_o will_v not_o i_o say_v communicate_v unto_o they_o these_o water_n of_o life_n to_o drink_v of_o unless_o mortify_v as_o it_o be_v 1_o st_z with_o several_a error_n as_o the_o protestant_n say_v gross_a damnable_a and_o perilous_a to_o their_o salvation_n and_o from_o which_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o all_o true_a believer_n ought_v to_o separate_v and_o again_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o as_o the_o protestant_n say_v of_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n who_o they_o count_v now_o above_o 1000_o year_n old_a his_o full_a age_n be_v foretell_v to_o be_v 1260._o be_v now_o not_o far_o off_o i_o desire_v he_o next_o to_o consider_v *_o whether_o that_o which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v instead_o of_o the_o roman_a the_o most_o pure_a and_o orthodox_n religion_n recover_v by_o luther_n and_o to_o which_o therefore_o these_o nation_n if_o not_o already_o must_v be_v
own_o understanding_n and_o industry_n to_o find_v out_o his_o own_o way_n to_o heaven_n because_o he_o can_v secure_o trust_v no_o live_a guide_n on_o earth_n beside_o through_o all_o the_o thorny_a controversy_n of_o the_o present_a age_n grow_v as_o dr._n field_n say_v in_o number_n so_o many_o and_o in_o matter_n so_o intricate_a which_o require_v vast_a pain_n thorough_o to_o examine_v and_o a_o excellent_a judgement_n aright_o to_o determine_v and_o which_o much_o eloquence_n and_o long_o smooth_v of_o they_o the_o interpose_v of_o humane_a reason_n in_o divine_a matter_n and_o the_o vary_a record_n of_o former_a age_n have_v render_v on_o all_o side_n so_o far_o plausible_a and_o resemble_v truth_n that_o a_o little_a interest_n serve_v the_o turn_n to_o blind_v a_o man_n in_o his_o choice_n and_o make_v he_o embrace_v a_o error_n for_o truth_n let_v he_o i_o say_v humble_o resign_v his_o weary_a and_o distract_a judgement_n whole_o to_o her_o direction_n §_o 80_o for_n as_o sir_n edwin_n sandys_n in_o his_o relation_n of_o the_o western_a religion_n 29._o religion_n p_o 29._o speak_v methinks_v very_o pertinent_o though_o in_o the_o person_n of_o a_o romanist_n plead_v his_o own_o cause_n seeing_z christianity_n be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n a_o doctrine_n whereof_o all_o man_n even_o child_n be_v capable_a as_o be_v gross_a and_o to_o be_v believe_v in_o general_n by_o all_o see_v the_o high_a virtue_n of_o faith_n be_v in_o the_o humility_n of_o the_o understanding_n and_o the_o merit_n thereof_o in_o the_o readiness_n of_o obedience_n to_o embrace_v it_o and_o see_v the_o outward_a proof_n thereof_o be_v no_o other_o than_o probable_a and_o of_o all_o probable_a proof_n the_o church-testimony_n be_v most_o probable_a so_o he_o which_o i_o propose_v rather_o thus_o see_v of_o outward_a proof_n of_o our_o faith_n where_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o thing_n dispute_v the_o church_n testimony_n whether_o for_o declare_v to_o we_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_n be_v a_o proof_n of_o most_o weight_n what_o madness_n be_v it_o for_o any_o man_n to_o tire_v out_o his_o soul_n and_o to_o waste_v away_o his_o spirit_n in_o trace_v out_o all_o the_o thorny_a path_n of_o the_o controversy_n of_o these_o day_n wherein_o to_o err_v be_v no_o less_o easy_a than_o dangerous_a what_o through_o forgery_n all_o author_n abuse_n he_o what_o through_o sophistry_n transport_v he_o and_o not_o rather_o to_o betake_v himself_o to_o the_o right_a path_n of_o truth_n whereunto_o god_n and_o nature_n reason_n and_o experience_n do_v all_o give_v witness_n and_o that_o be_v to_o associate_v himself_o to_o that_o church_n whereunto_o the_o custody_n of_o this_o heavenly_a and_o supernatural_a truth_n have_v be_v from_o heaven_n itself_o commit_v to_o weigh_v discreet_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o that_o be_v once_o find_v to_o receive_v faithful_o and_o obedient_o without_o doubt_n or_o discussion_n whatsoever_o it_o deliver_v §_o 81_o and_o then_o further_o if_o in_o this_o disquisition_n of_o his_o to_o make_v use_n here_o of_o that_o plea_n which_o the_o same_o author_n in_o the_o follow_a word_n have_v very_o fair_o draw_v up_o 30._o up_o relation_n of_o western_a religious_a p._n 30._o for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o her_o adherent_n without_o give_v we_o any_o counter-defence_n or_o show_v any_o more_o powerful_a attractive_n of_o the_o church_n reform_v what_o ever_o he_o intend_v if_o beside_o the_o roman_a and_o those_o church_n unit_v with_o it_o he_o find_v all_o other_o church_n to_o have_v have_v their_o end_n or_o decay_v long_o since_o i_o mean_v the_o sect_n and_o religion_n that_o have_v be_v former_o in_o the_o western_a world_n hussites_n lollard_n waldenses_n albigenses_n berengarian_n which_o some_o protestant_n make_v much_o pretence_n to_o or_o their_o begin_n but_o of_o late_a if_o this_o be_v found_v by_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n with_o promise_n to_o he_o by_o christ_n that_o hell_n gate_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o but_o that_o himself_o will_v be_v assistant_n to_o it_o till_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n have_v continue_v on_o now_o till_o the_o end_n of_o a_o 1600._o year_n with_o a_o honourable_a and_o certain_a line_n of_o near_o 240._o pope_n successor_n of_o st._n peter_n both_o tyrant_n and_o traitor_n pagan_n and_o heretic_n in_o vain_a wrest_n rage_a and_o undermine_v if_o all_o the_o lawful_a general_n council_n that_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n have_v from_o time_n to_o time_n approve_v and_o honour_v it_o if_o god_n have_v so_o miraculous_o bless_v it_o from_o above_o as_o that_o so_o many_o sage_a doctor_n shall_v enrich_v it_o with_o their_o writing_n such_o army_n of_o saint_n with_o their_o holiness_n of_o martyr_n with_o their_o blood_n of_o virgin_n with_o their_o purity_n shall_v sanstifie_v and_o embellish_v it_o if_o even_o at_o this_o day_n in_o such_o difficulty_n of_o unjust_a rebellion_n and_o unnatural_a revolt_n of_o her_o near_a child_n yet_o she_o stretch_v out_o her_o arm_n to_o the_o utmost_a corner_n of_o the_o world_n new_o embrace_v whole_a nation_n into_o her_o bosom_n if_o last_o in_o all_o other_o opposite_a church_n there_o be_v find_v inward_a dissension_n and_o contrariety_n change_n of_o opinion_n uncertainty_n of_o resolution_n with_o rob_v of_o church_n rebel_a against_o governor_n thing_n much_o more_o experience_a since_o this_o author_n death_n in_o the_o late_a presbiterian_a war_n confusion_n of_o order_n invade_v of_o episcopacy_n yea_o and_o presbytery_n too_o whereas_o contrariwise_o in_o this_o church_n the_o unity_n undivided_a the_o resolution_n unalterable_a the_o most_o heavenly_a order_n reach_v from_o the_o height_n of_o all_o power_n to_o the_o low_a of_o all_o subjection_n all_o with_o admirable_a harmony_n and_o undefective_a correspondence_n bend_v the_o same_o way_n to_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o same_o work_n do_v promise_v no_o other_o than_o continual_a increase_n and_o victory_n let_v no_o man_n doubt_v to_o submit_v himself_o to_o this_o glorious_a spouse_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n this_o then_o be_v accord_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n it_o follow_v that_o she_o be_v reverent_o obey_v in_o all_o thing_n without_o further_a inquisition_n she_o have_v the_o warrant_n that_o he_o that_o hear_v she_o hear_v christ_n and_o whosoever_o hear_v she_o not_o have_v no_o better_a place_n with_o god_n than_o a_o publican_n or_o a_o pagan_a and_o what_o folly_n be_v it_o to_o receive_v the_o scripture_n upon_o credit_n of_o her_o authority_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v before_o luther_n time_n and_o not_o to_o receive_v the_o interpretation_n of_o they_o upon_o her_o authority_n also_o and_o credit_v and_o if_o god_n shall_v not_o always_o protect_v his_o church_n from_o error_n i._n e._n dangerous_a to_o or_o destructive_a of_o salvation_n and_o yet_o peremptory_o command_v man_n always_o to_o obey_v she_o then_o have_v he_o make_v but_o very_o slender_a provision_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n which_o conceit_n concern_v god_n who_o care_n of_o we_o even_o in_o all_o thing_n touch_v this_o transitory_a life_n be_v so_o plain_a and_o eminent_a be_v ungrateful_a and_o impious_a and_o hard_o be_v the_o case_n and_o mean_v have_v his_o regard_n be_v of_o the_o vulgar_a people_n who_o want_n and_o difficulty_n in_o this_o life_n will_v not_o permit_v who_o capacity_n will_v not_o suffice_v to_o sound_v the_o deep_a and_o hide_a mystery_n of_o divinity_n and_o to_o search_v out_o the_o truth_n of_o intricate_a controversy_n if_o there_o be_v not_o other_o who_o authority_n they_o may_v safe_o rely_v on_o bless_a be_v they_o who_o believe_v and_o have_v not_o see_v though_o they_o do_v not_o see_v reason_n always_o for_o that_o they_o believe_v save_v only_o that_o reason_n of_o their_o belief_n draw_v from_o authority_n the_o merit_n of_o who_o religious_a humility_n and_o obedience_n do_v exceed_v perhaps_o in_o honour_n and_o acceptation_n before_o god_n the_o subtle_a and_o profound_a knowledge_n of_o many_o other_o thus_o that_o author_n plead_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o roman_a and_o its_o adherent_a church_n without_o a_o reply_n to_o which_o perhaps_o it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o join_v the_o like_a plea_n 1._o §._o 82._o n._n 1._o for_o this_o church_n draw_v up_o by_o another_o eminent_a person_n 249._o person_n dr._n tailor_n liberty_n of_o prophesy_v §._o 20._o p._n 249._o in_o a_o treatise_n write_v concern_v the_o unreasonableness_n of_o prescribe_v to_o other_o man_n faith_n wherein_o he_o endeavour_v to_o represent_v several_a sect_n of_o christianity_n in_o their_o fair_a colour_n in_o order_n to_o a_o charitable_a toleration_n these_o consideration_n than_o he_o there_o propose_v concern_v the_o roman_a church_n which_o say_v he_o may_v very_o
allow_v a_o fallible_a king_n or_o parliament_n to_o do_v but_o see_v canon_n 36._o of_o the_o same_o synod_n 1603._o where_o the_o church_n also_o require_v the_o subscriber_n not_o only_o not_o to_o affirm_v the_o 3._o article_n contain_v in_o that_o canon_n to_o be_v erroneous_a namely_o that_o the_o king_n majesty_n be_v the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n of_o his_o realm_n in_o spiritual_a thing_n 2._o that_o the_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n contain_v in_o it_o nothing_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n but_o in_o the_o three_o article_n more_o express_o require_v he_o to_o subscribe_v that_o he_o allow_v and_o acknowledge_v i.e._n confess_v believe_v all_o the_o 39_o article_n to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n add_v to_o this_o that_o whereas_o the_o canon_n 140._o excomminicate_n till_o they_o public_o revoke_v their_o wicked_a error_n any_o who_o shall_v affirm_v that_o those_o who_o have_v not_o give_v their_o voice_n to_o the_o decree_n make_v in_o the_o sacred_a synod_n of_o this_o nation_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o decree_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o in_o the_o conference_n at_o hampton-court_n the_o puritan_n party_n move_v this_o question_n how_o far_o such_o ordinance_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o bind_v they_o without_o impeach_v their_o christian_a liberty_n they_o receive_v from_o the_o king_n this_o answer_n i_o will_v have_v one_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n one_o religion_n in_o substance_n and_o ceremony_n and_o therefore_o i_o charge_v you_o never_o to_o speak_v more_o to_o that_o point_n how_o far_o you_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v when_o the_o church_n have_v ordain_v it_o this_o injunction_n of_o king_n james_n to_o puritan_n have_v it_o be_v obey_v by_o the_o first_o reformer_n will_v it_o not_o have_v prevent_v the_o birth_n of_o protestantisme_n and_o the_o dispute_n at_o hampton-court_n again_o the_o church_n of_o england_n 2._o §._o 83._o n._n 2._o in_o some_o of_o those_o canon_n excommunicate_v man_n for_o not_o do_v something_o which_o she_o command_v to_o be_v do_v now_o in_o all_o such_o in_o junction_n of_o practical_o there_o be_v involve_v a_o injunction_n of_o assent_n fi●st_n that_o such_o practice_n be_v lawful_a the_o nine_o canon_n run_v thus_o whosoever_o shall_v hereafter_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n account_v the_o christian_n who_o be_v conformable_a to_o her_o doctrine_n etc._n etc._n to_o be_v profane_a and_o unmeet_a for_o they_o to_o join_v with_o in_o christian_a profession_n let_v they_o be_v excommunicate_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la and_o not_o restore_v till_o after_o their_o repentance_n and_o public_a revocation_n of_o such_o their_o store_a till_o after_o their_o repentance_n and_o public_a revocation_n of_o such_o their_o wicked_a error_n here_o the_o church_n of_o england_n require_v under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n that_o none_o do_v account_v her_o communion_n profane_a etc._n etc._n for_o whosoever_o account_v the_o church_n of_o england_n such_o her_o self_n be_v judge_n ought_v to_o separate_v from_o she_o a_o erroneous_a conscience_n oblige_v neither_o may_v any_o say_v that_o the_o church_n here_o for_o his_o restitution_n enjoin_v repentance_n only_o for_o his_o separate_n but_o rather_o for_o his_o account_v those_o who_o conform_v profane_a 1._o for_o his_o error_n from_o which_o once_o grant_v a_o separation_n ought_v to_o follow_v again_o canon_n 12._o those_o who_o submit_v themselves_o to_o be_v rule_v by_o any_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n make_v without_o the_o king_n authority_n be_v excommunicate_v here_o the_o canon_n require_v man_n not_o to_o submit_v to_o be_v govern_v by_o such_o constitution_n require_v they_o to_o believe_v also_o such_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n to_o be_v unlawful_o make_v and_o not_o oblige_v else_o man_n ought_v to_o submit_v unto_o they_o canon_n 59_o those_o parson_n who_o do_v not_o teach_v on_o sunday_n the_o catechism_n set_v forth_o in_o the_o common-prayer_n book_n be_v excommunicate_v but_o if_o they_o hold_v any_o thing_n in_o such_o catechism_n unlawful_a they_o may_v not_o teach_v it_o therefore_o the_o synod_n in_o express_o require_v they_o under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n to_o teach_v it_o virtual_o under_o the_o same_o penalty_n require_v their_o assent_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_o to_o be_v teach_v 2_o lie_n in_o the_o national_a synod_n 3._o §._o 83._o n._n 3._o hold_v under_o king_n charles_n 1640._o see_v the_o three_o canon_n 2._o 2._o where_o it_o be_v order_v that_o all_o popish_a recusants_n though_o silent_a though_o nothing_o affirm_v whatever_o way_n they_o can_v be_v discover_v whether_o by_o their_o refuse_v to_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n which_o oath_n exact_v their_o punctual_a assent_n to_o several_a doctrine_n or_o by_o their_o refuse_v to_o receive_v the_o communion_n with_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n a_o practice_n that_o require_v their_o assent_n that_o this_o church_n be_v not_o schismatical_a be_v excommunicate_v where_o whilst_o the_o church_n of_o england_n think_v she_o have_v sufficient_a authority_n to_o exclude_v from_o her_o communion_n all_o that_o hold_v the_o popish_a tenant_n why_o complain_v she_o of_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o exclude_v from_o her_o communion_n all_o that_o hold_v the_o protestant_a tenant_n again_o in_o the_o four_o canon_n it_o be_v decree_v that_o any_o one_o who_o be_v accuse_v of_o socinianism_n unless_o he_o will_v absolute_o &_o in_o terminis_fw-la abjure_v it_o be_v excommunicate_v now_o he_o that_o be_v require_v upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n to_o abjure_v the_o popish_a or_o the_o socinian_n tenant_n be_v require_v under_o the_o same_o penalty_n so_o often_o to_o assent_v to_o the_o protestant_n or_o the_o anti-socinian_n tenant_n where_o ever_o these_o be_v immediate_o contrary_a or_o contradictory_n to_o the_o other_o as_o many_o time_n they_o be_v so_o whoever_o be_v oblige_v to_o abjure_v filium_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la consub●●antialem_fw-la patri_fw-la be_v oblige_v by_o the_o same_o canon_n to_o assent_v filium_fw-la esse_fw-la consubstantiatem_fw-la patri_fw-la last_o in_o the_o six_o canon_n there_o the_o synod_n require_v *_o assent_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o *_o the_n profession_n of_o this_o assent_n upon_o oath_n i_o a._n b._n do_v swear_v that_o i_o do_v approve_v and_o sincere_o acknowledge_v the_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n establish_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o be_v i_o do_v assent_n and_o believe_v it_o to_o contain_v etc._n etc._n thus_o much_o of_o several_a injunction_n and_o canon_n of_o the_o reform_a synod_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o seem_v to_o tie_v her_o subject_n to_o as_o strict_a a_o obedience_n of_o assent_n and_o approbation_n for_o any_o thing_n i_o can_v discern_v to_o all_o her_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n as_o any_o other_o council_n have_v do_v and_o to_o give_v as_o little_a liberty_n to_o any_o to_o oppose_v her_o decree_n not_o withstand_v what_o she_o say_v of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o council_n art_n 20._o &_o 21._o hence_o that_o complain_v of_o the_o presbyterian_a minister_n 4._o §._o 83._o n_o 4._o concern_v their_o obligation_n to_o these_o article_n and_o canon_n in_o their_o reason_n show_v necessity_n of_o reformation_n print_v 1660_o *_o that_o if_o they_o may_v not_o subscribe_v with_o such_o a_o addition_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o the_o same_o article_n be_v agreeable_a to_o god_n word_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o composer_n of_o they_o be_v admit_v to_o be_v infallible_a or_o else_o that_o the_o statute_n 13._o elizabeth_z 12._o intend_v to_o tyrannize_v over_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n i._n e._n in_o require_v they_o to_o profess_v what_o their_o conscience_n tell_v they_o be_v not_o truth_n *_o that_o the_o statute_n require_v belief_n of_o every_o one_o of_o these_o article_n when_o it_o enjoin_v not_o only_a subscription_n but_o a_o assent_n unto_o they_o punish_v all_o with_o deprivation_n that_o shall_v affirm_v and_o maintain_v any_o doctrine_n repugnant_a to_o they_o which_o every_o man_n must_v do_v if_o they_o be_v find_v contrariant_n to_o the_o word_n or_o he_o mu●t_v be_v false_a to_o god_n and_o p._n 36._o concern_v obligation_n to_o ceremony_n *_o that_o these_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v impose_v on_o those_o who_o can_v be_v full_o persuade_v in_o their_o own_o mind_n and_o conscience_n that_o they_o be_v lawful_a and_o therefore_o must_v sin_v if_o they_o use_v they_o thus_o the_o presbyterian_o yet_o this_o course_n as_o most_o necessary_a be_v long_o ago_o hint_v by_o mr._n calvin_n to_o the_o first_o founder_n of_o the_o english_a reformation_n the_o lord_n protector_n in_o
relinquish_a the_o roman_a communion_n and_o that_o in_o which_o she_o be_v chief_o charge_v to_o have_v violate_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n 55._o church_n s●●llin_n p._n 55._o that_o it_o come_v forth_o many_o year_n after_o the_o protestant_n discession_n from_o this_o church_n whether_o we_o look_v at_o luther_n or_o that_o under_o king_n edward_n or_o the_o last_o under_o queen_n elisabeth_n and_o many_o year_n too_o after_o the_o birth_n of_o their_o thirty-nine_o article_n make_v against_o the_o roman_a faith_n both_o after_o those_o compose_v under_o edward_n vi_o a._n d._n 1549_o and_o reconfirm_v under_o queen_n elisabeth_n 1562._o this_o bull_n not_o be_v make_v till_o 1564._o so_o that_o herein_o they_o seem_v to_o take_v their_o chief_a excuse_n for_o their_o discession_n from_o that_o church_n from_o a_o thing_n that_o happen_v long_o after_o it_o as_o if_o they_o depart_v from_o it_o out_o of_o the_o foresight_n of_o a_o offence_n which_o though_o it_o then_o be_v not_o yet_o will_v be_v give_v they_o by_o it_o the_o 4_o thing_n i_o have_v to_o observe_v to_o you_o touch_v before_o be_v 7._o §._o 85._o n._n 7._o obs_n 4_o that_o though_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o her_o synod_n affix_v not_o particular_a anathemaes_n to_o her_o article_n as_o the_o roman-catholick_n do_v in_o that_o of_o trent_n with_o a_o si_fw-mi quis_fw-la dixerit_fw-la etc._n etc._n anathema_n sit_v yet_o the_o forementioned_a 5_o canon_n of_o this_o church_n pronounce_v in_o general_a a_o excommunication_n to_o a_o si_fw-mi quis_fw-la affirmaverit_fw-la that_o any_o of_o these_o article_n be_v in_o any_o part_n erroneous_a the_o weighty_a value_n of_o which_o excommunication_n also_o you_o may_v learn_v out_o of_o their_o art_n 33._o these_o thing_n premise_v 8._o §._o 85._o n._n 8._o now_o to_o speak_v brief_o to_o the_o former_a protestant-defence_n make_v α._n resp_n to_o α._n §_o 84._o n._n 1._o etc._n etc._n to_o α_n i_o answer_v that_o by_o the_o instance_n in_o the_o canon_n etc._n etc._n produce_v before_o §_o 83._o n._n 1._o and_o some_o of_o the_o expression_n §_o 84._o n._n 3._o the_o church-governor_n intention_n in_o require_v this_o subscription_n seem_v to_o be_v assent_n to_o β_n that_o as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n require_v submission_n to_o her_o article_n only_o from_o her_o own_o child_n or_o subject_n so_o do_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n who_o subject_n if_o it_o be_v a_o general_a one_o etc._n one_o or_o which_o see_v consid_fw-la on_o count_n of_o trent_n §_o 15_o etc._n etc._n be_v all_o christianity_n if_o a_o patriarchal_a 43._o patriarchal_a of_o which_o see_v ib_a §_o 43._o all_o the_o western_a church_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n that_o of_o england_n to_o γ_n that_o as_o subscription_n to_o the_o article_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v only_o require_v from_o those_o who_o be_v to_o be_v initiate_v into_o holy_a order_n or_o admit_v to_o ecclesiastical_a preferment_n so_o be_v pius_n oath_n to_o the_o canon_n only_o exact_v from_o those_o who_o enter_v into_o sacred_a order_n or_o religion_n but_o as_o the_o anathemaes_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n extend_v to_o all_o person_n so_o do_v the_o excommunication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n can._n 5._o to_o δ_n that_o though_o these_o be_v not_o pen_v with_o a_o particular_a anathema_n yet_o they_o be_v with_o a_o general_a excommunication_n can._n 5._o to_o ε_n that_o as_o not_o by_o they_o to_o their_o article_n so_o neither_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o her_o canon_n be_v subscription_n require_v as_o to_o article_n of_o her_o faith_n or_o article_n fundamental_a if_o faith_n or_o fundamental_a be_v understand_v in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o the_o protestant_a quotation_n above_o explain_v they_o this_o have_v be_v show_v §_o 85._o n._n 5_o 6._o to_o ξ_n by_o this_o it_o be_v confess_v that_o of_o the_o 39_o article_n no_o more_o be_v article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n faith_n than_o those_o only_a wherein_o rome_n do_v agree_v with_o she_o and_o then_o if_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o her_o article_n no_o assent_n be_v exact_v of_o any_o as_o be_v contend_v above_o §_o 84._o one_o in_o all_o thing_n believe_v and_o be_v of_o the_o same_o persuasion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v free_o admit_v into_o the_o church_n of_o england_n communion_n nay_o may_v without_o violation_n of_o her_o constitution_n lawful_o enter_v into_o her_o holy_a order_n and_o ecclesiastical_a preferment_n and_o there_o remain_v without_o any_o engagement_n to_o defend_v the_o church_n of_o england_n doctrine_n or_o teach_v and_o instruct_v the_o people_n against_o the_o roman_a error_n to_o n_o that_o her_o negative_a article_n involve_v affirmative_n and_o those_o too_o pretend_a divine_a revelation_n see_v before_o §_o 85._o n._n 3._o which_o be_v the_o object_n of_o faith_n and_o do_v bind_v so_o strict_o on_o one_o side_n as_o the_o roman_a canon_n do_v on_o the_o other_o and_o suppose_v assent_n require_v to_o they_o do_v admit_v as_o little_a latitude_n of_o opinion_n and_o at_o luther_n appearance_n the_o matter_n of_o these_o roman_a canon_n be_v in_o possession_n as_o to_o the_o common_a belief_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n these_o negative_n of_o they_o of_o the_o two_o will_v prove_v the_o innovation_n last_o in_o what_o sense_n protestant_n say_v these_o negative_n be_v no_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n i._n e._n faith_n necessary_a ratione_fw-la medii_fw-la to_o salvation_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n the_o roman_a church_n say_v neither_o be_v her_o positives_n that_o contradict_v they_o to_o θ_o of_o the_o many_o canon_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n make_v in_o opposition_n to_o they_o luther_n many_o error_n and_o innovation_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v daily_o collect_v and_o bring_v into_o the_o council_n be_v the_o cause_n and_o as_o to_o the_o main_a point_n that_o be_v in_o debate_n between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o england_n the_o negative_n in_o the_o english_a article_n equal_a the_o affirmative_n in_o the_o canon_n of_o trent_n to_o χ_n whether_o assent_n to_o the_o article_n be_v require_v in_o subscription_n or_o only_o non_fw-la contradiction_n as_o to_o any_o uniform_a accord_n in_o their_o late_a writer_n i_o see_v nothing_o clear_a and_o the_o late_a seem_n more_o agreeable_a with_o their_o principle_n but_o in_o the_o former_a instance_n out_o of_o some_o canon_n etc._n etc._n assent_n seem_v as_o strict_o require_v in_o this_o church_n and_o that_o upon_o excommunication_n as_o in_o the_o roman_a upon_o anathemaes_n and_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n elisabeth_n 13._o recite_v before_o §_o 83._o n._n 1._o a_o act_n pass_v not_o only_o by_o the_o lord_n temporal_a but_o spiritual_a i._n e._n the_o governor_n of_o this_o church_n be_v most_o express_a for_o it_o review_n it_o 1._o it_o §_o 83._o n_o 1._o to_o λ_n 9_o §_o 85._o n._n 9_o it_o be_v true_a also_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o thought_n be_v free_a and_o ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la judicat_fw-la de_fw-fr occultis_fw-la or_o peccatis_fw-la merè_fw-la internis_fw-la i._n e._n no_o way_n discover_v but_o true_a also_o that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a magistrate_n may_v lawful_o inquire_v into_o man_n thought_n and_o belief_n and_o question_v a_o person_n herein_o for_o this_o be_v do_v in_o baptism_n and_o that_o not_o only_a word_n be_v punishable_a as_o fault_n by_o this_o magistrate_n but_o thought_n if_o any_o one_o shall_v reveal_v that_o he_o think_v so_o i._n e._n thought_n when_o they_o be_v any_o way_n discover_v as_o any_o one_o upon_o examination_n manifest_v any_o blasphemous_a thought_n or_o tenant_n of_o he_o may_v be_v lawful_o excommunicate_v and_o in_o such_o a_o case_n be_v excommunicate_v not_o for_o the_o reveal_v they_o in_o word_n but_o for_o the_o hold_v they_o so_o who_o defigne_v a_o treason_n and_o afterward_o reveal_v it_o be_v just_o punish_v not_o for_o the_o reveal_n but_o design_v thereof_o and_o this_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v and_o if_o the_o church_n of_o england_n extend_v not_o her_o inquisition_n or_o censure_n thus_o far_o especial_o as_o to_o those_o person_n she_o admit_v into_o the_o clergy_n she_o may_v expect_v a_o babel_n of_o religion_n and_o dissent_v judgement_n in_o point_n of_o great_a consequence_n under_o the_o mask_n of_o one_o external_a communion_n to_o μ_n 10._o §._o 85._o n._n 10._o only_o a_o conditional_a assent_n require_v seem_v to_o signify_v little_a for_o establish_v unity_n of_o faith_n or_o consent_v in_o religion_n which_o tie_v none_o so_o but_o that_o of_o two_o subscriber_n one_o may_v absolute_o assent_v another_o dissent_n the_o same_o person_n assent_v to_o day_n dissent_v to_o morrow_n and_o a_o socinian_n confident_a of_o his_o opinion_n as_o free_o subscribe_v as_o any_o other_o of_o the_o reform_a a_o presbyterian_a
as_o a_o prelatist_n for_o since_o the_o judgement_n here_o concern_v the_o condition_n viz._n when_o the_o church_n prove_v what_o she_o propose_v or_o when_o the_o subscriber_n prove_v the_o contrary_a when_o he_o be_v competent_a to_o search_v ground_n or_o the_o church_n unfaithful_a in_o conserve_n her_o depositum_fw-la be_v leave_v not_o to_o the_o church_n but_o to_o the_o subscriber_n it_o cast_v the_o assent_n and_o dissent_v also_o whole_o into_o his_o disposal_n and_o arbitrement_n and_o note_v here_o also_o that_o who_o may_v require_v only_o a_o conditional_a assent_n can_v likewise_o exact_v only_o in_o such_o point_n as_o be_v practical_a a_o conditional_a conformity_n i._n e._n that_o none_o be_v absolute_o enjoin_v to_o practise_v such_o a_o thing_n but_o only_o upon_o supposition_n that_o the_o church_n first_o prove_v it_o to_o he_o lawful_a to_o be_v do_v or_o that_o he_o can_v prove_v it_o to_o the_o church_n to_o be_v unlawful_a or_o that_o he_o be_v a_o person_n unable_a to_o search_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n or_o unlawfulness_n thereof_o etc._n etc._n of_o which_o ●_z himself_n also_o not_o the_o church_n be_v judge_n for_o otherwise_o he_o that_o oblige_v a_o person_n absolute_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o a_o thing_n oblige_v he_o also_o absolute_o to_o the_o believe_v that_o thing_n lawful_a to_o be_v do_v which_o late_a the_o church_n of_o england_n not_o own_v neither_o may_v she_o the_o first_o and_o who_o ought_v to_o have_v his_o liberty_n for_o the_o one_o ought_v so_o for_o the_o other_o too_o now_o it_o be_v ordinary_a in_o the_o english_a canon_n to_o require_v upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n conformity_n to_o her_o constitution_n where_o have_v this_o secret_a be_v know_v to_o the_o presbyterian_o that_o it_o be_v understand_v only_o of_o such_o a_o conditional_a conformity_n i_o suppose_v there_o will_v have_v be_v no_o cause_n of_o their_o forbear_n subscription_n or_o complain_v of_o the_o english_a church-law_n their_o be_v as_o rigorous_a and_o unjust_a as_o those_o of_o rome_n thus_o i_o have_v make_v a_o search_n into_o the_o obedience_n 11._o §._o 85._o n._n 11._o which_o be_v require_v of_o her_o subject_n by_o a_o church_n that_o seem_v not_o well_o ground_v in_o her_o authority_n by_o reason_n that_o have_v disjoin_v herself_o from_o that_o which_o she_o acknowledge_v be_v former_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o from_o superior_a council_n she_o can_v neither_o lay_v claim_n to_o that_o infallibility_n in_o necessary_n which_o from_o our_o lord_n perpetual_a superintendency_n reside_v in_o the_o whole_a as_o all_o member_n thorough_o consent_v with_o the_o whole_a and_o guide_v by_o it_o do_v lay_v claim_v to_o such_o infallibility_n and_o therefore_o do_v require_v obedience_n from_o their_o subject_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o the_o whole_a do_v as_o to_o all_o such_o doctrine_n wherein_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o whole_a nor_o can_v she_o standing_z apart_z and_o allege_v the_o reason_n of_o it_o the_o former_a church_n error_n have_v the_o confidence_n to_o claim_v a_o new_a infallibility_n to_o herself_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o there_o seem_v some_o uncertainty_n what_o obedience_n she_o require_v where_o there_o be_v what_o authority_n she_o possess_v and_o where_o such_o obedience_n be_v ground_v rather_o on_o the_o pretend_a clear_a evidence_n of_o the_o matter_n propose_v than_o the_o sovereign_a and_o undeclinable_a authority_n of_o the_o proposer_n meanwhile_o whether_o she_o challenge_v a_o obedience_n of_o assent_n from_o her_o subject_n 12._o §._o 85._o n._n 12._o or_o that_o of_o noncontradiction_n i_o see_v not_o how_o she_o can_v be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n or_o by_o her_o own_o principle_n for_o 1_o by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n if_o she_o just_o require_v assent_v from_o she_o and_o be_v she_o not_o in_o conscience_n oblige_v to_o yield_v it_o these_o as_o well_o as_o she_o determine_v nothing_o but_o what_o they_o think_v a_o clear_a truth_n or_o can_v she_o blame_v the_o fallible_a church_n of_o rome_n for_o require_v assent_n to_o her_o canon_n upon_o anathema_n when_o she_o fallible_a require_v the_o same_o upon_o excommunication_n for_o the_o disparity_n that_o be_v make_v here_o have_v be_v former_o answer_v and_o any_o evidence_n or_o certainty_n protestant_n pretend_v for_o those_o doctrine_n to_o which_o they_o require_v assent_v the_o roman_a church_n plead_v the_o like_a for_o she_o and_o so_o sub_fw-la judice_fw-la lie_fw-la est_fw-la concern_v this_o hear_v mr._n chillingw_o 375._o chillingw_o p._n 375._o any_o thing_n beside_o scripture_n and_o the_o plain_a irrefragable_a indubitable_a consequence_n of_o it_o i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v appear_v such_o not_o only_o to_o the_o church-governor_n but_o their_o subject_n and_o that_o all_o the_o 39_o article_n have_v not_o such_o a_o evidence_n well_o may_v protestant_n hold_v it_o as_o matter_n of_o opinion_n but_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n neither_o can_v they_o with_o coherence_n to_o their_o own_o ground_n believe_v it_o themselves_o nor_o require_v the_o belief_n of_o it_o of_o other_o without_o most_o high_a and_o most_o schismatical_a presumption_n but_o 2_o if_o lay_v assent_n aside_o only_o a_o noncontradiction_n of_o her_o article_n or_o a_o non-affirmation_n that_o they_o be_v any_o way_n erroneous_a be_v require_v upon_o excommunication_n of_o the_o person_n so_o offend_v yet_o neither_o will_v this_o be_v justifiable_a by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n for_o no_o canon_n of_o a_o national_a synod_n can_v just_o pronounce_v excommunication_n on_o any_o for_o affirm_v so_o many_o point_n in_o their_o article_n erroneous_a as_o have_v be_v determine_v by_o superior_a council_n a_o general_n or_o a_o patriarchal_a synod_n contrary_o for_o example_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o a_o national_a synod_n in_o england_n to_o excommunicate_v a_o person_n for_o affirm_v their_o article_n erroneous_a in_o deny_v transubstantiation_n because_o this_o have_v be_v determine_v affirmative_o by_o many_o former_a superior_a synod_n accept_v by_o the_o whole_a western_a church_n as_o be_v show_v before_o 1._o disc_n §_o 57_o which_o therefore_o oblige_v christian_n to_o the_o belief_n and_o profession_n of_o it_o against_o the_o decree_n of_o any_o inferior_a western_a synod_n neither_o 2_o do_v they_o seem_v to_o inflict_v excommunication_n on_o every_o one_o that_o affirm_v any_o of_o their_o article_n erroneous_a without_o condemn_v their_o own_o principle_n because_o what_o they_o say_v of_o general_a council_n be_v as_o true_a i_o suppose_v for_o their_o own_o synod_n viz._n that_o they_o may_v err_v gross_o and_o manifest_o in_o which_o case_n they_o say_v one_o may_v lawful_o affirm_v these_o council_n in_o such_o thing_n erroneous_a else_o how_o can_v they_o ever_o be_v correct_v see_v before_o §_o 43_o 44._o etc._n etc._n the_o case_n therefore_o be_v the_o same_o as_o to_o their_o own_o synod_n and_o then_o for_o what_o they_o say_v a_o person_n may_v lawful_o do_v they_o can_v lawful_o excommunicate_v he_o but_o if_o it_o be_v reply_v 13._o §._o 85._o n._n 13._o that_o their_o synod_n challenge_v a_o obedience_n of_o non_fw-fr contradiction_n only_o to_o what_o they_o be_v certain_a be_v truth_n and_o therefore_o none_o may_v lawful_o in_o such_o case_n contradict_v they_o or_o affirm_v they_o err_v 1_o it_o follow_v they_o may_v upon_o the_o same_o term_n require_v assent_n also_o of_o which_o they_o seem_v more_o rich_a but_o 2_o as_o they_o plead_v certainty_n so_o do_v other_o council_n who_o yet_o they_o will_v not_o excuse_v upon_o this_o pretence_n for_o require_v assent_n as_o have_v be_v but_o now_o say_v 3_o it_o seem_v unreasonable_a that_o a_o certainty_n either_o from_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n necessary_a deduction_n former_a universal_a tradition_n or_o any_o other_o way_n shall_v be_v pretend_v by_o a_o particular_a church_n in_o any_o such_o matter_n from_o which_o a_o major_a part_n of_o christianity_n peruse_v the_o same_o evidence_n dissent_n 12._o dissent_n disc_n 2_o §._o 5._o disc_n 4_o §_o 11_o 12._o such_o as_o be_v several_a of_o the_o 39_o article_n 4_o protestant_n themselves_o affirm_v that_o those_o who_o be_v certain_a of_o truth_n yet_o may_v not_o require_v a_o absolute_a but_o conditional_a assent_n from_o other_o who_o first_o know_v they_o in_o general_a to_o be_v fallible_a and_o next_o do_v not_o know_v or_o have_v it_o not_o prove_v to_o they_o that_o in_o this_o particular_a they_o dot_v err_v see_v before_o §_o 85._o n._n 10._o and_o the_o same_o they_o say_v for_o noncontradiction_n require_v that_o it_o must_v be_v only_o conditional_a i._n e._n if_o the_o contrary_a truth_n to_o the_o error_n define_v do_v not_o appear_v to_o the_o church_n subject_n necessary_a to_o be_v divulge_v meanwhile_o it_o be_v not_o deny_v which_o be_v also_o
church_n or_o in_o such_o representation_n to_o be_v infallible_a but_o 2_o neither_o can_v it_o be_v make_v evident_a that_o the_o universal_a church_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la have_v either_o by_o a_o formal_a act_n or_o by_o a_o tacit_n consent_n devolve_v either_o its_o infallibility_n or_o its_o whole_a power_n and_o authority_n on_o or_o give_v any_o commission_n to_o any_o general_a council_n to_o appear_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o commission_n must_v precede_v the_o be_v of_o such_o a_o council_n and_o also_o be_v necessary_a not_o only_o to_o the_o first_o but_o toties_fw-la quoties_fw-la to_o every_o general_a council_n but_o that_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v ever_o agree_v in_o any_o such_o act_n be_v utter_o impossible_a to_o be_v demonstrate_v either_o that_o it_o be_v or_o can_v be_v 3_o neither_o suppose_v it_o have_v such_o a_o delegation_n yet_o can_v this_o representative_a upon_o this_o lay_v title_n to_o our_o lord_n or_o to_o any_o divine_a institution_n of_o which_o there_o can_v be_v produce_v one_o tittle_n from_o scripture_n of_o christ_n convey_v over_o the_o church_n power_n to_o it_o or_o any_o particular_a order_n from_o the_o apostle_n concern_v it_o but_o only_a to_o the_o church_n i_o e._n humane_a institution_n and_o if_o we_o inquire_v thus_o institute_v what_o authority_n it_o have_v the_o utmost_a say_v mr._n stillingfleet_n 510._o stillingfleet_n p._n 510._o that_o can_v be_v suppose_v be_v this_o that_o the_o part_n of_o the_o church_n i._n e._n such_o part_n who_o by_o their_o delegation_n and_o choose_v of_o they_o the_o person_n in_o the_o council_n represent_v may_v voluntary_o consent_v to_o accept_v of_o the_o decree_n of_o such_o a_o council_n and_o by_o that_o voluntary_a act_n or_o by_o the_o supreme_a authority_n enjoin_v it_o such_o decree_n may_v become_v obligatory_a thus_o he_o and_o thus_o i_o think_v the_o authority_n of_o general_n council_n be_v sufficient_o pare_v 1_o their_o authority_n only_o delegative_a from_o that_o body_n which_o yet_o they_o pretend_v to_o bind_v by_o their_o act_n 2._o none_o of_o they_o a_o representative_a of_o the_o whole_a which_o neither_o have_v nor_o can_v make_v any_o such_o representative_a 3._o commissioned_n by_o some_o part_n of_o the_o church_n only_o 4._o the_o promise_n of_o divine_a assistance_n as_o to_o infallibility_n not_o make_v to_o they_o if_o any_o make_v but_o only_o to_o the_o whole_a diffusive_a body_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n from_o who_o law_n let_v we_o but_o take_v away_o council_n protestant_n be_v secure_a enough_o 5._o nor_o possible_a by_o the_o church_n diffusive_a to_o be_v make_v over_o or_o assign_v to_o they_o 6._o these_z not_o of_o our_o lord_n nor_o apostolical_a but_o only_o humane_a institution_n 7._o obligatory_a only_o to_o those_o part_n of_o the_o church_n who_o voluntary_o consent_v to_o accept_v of_o their_o decree_n one_o will_v suspect_v that_o general_a council_n have_v be_v no_o great_a friend_n to_o protestantism_n when_o they_o put_v in_o so_o many_o bar_n to_o keep_v out_o their_o decree_n from_o annoy_v the_o reformation_n man_n seldom_o vilify_v a_o authority_n that_o favour_v they_o §_o 92_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v 1_o that_o the_o church_n governor_n whenever_o assemble_v in_o council_n do_v act_n by_o the_o self_n same_o authority_n receive_v from_o our_o lord_n and_o from_o their_o divine_a institution_n by_o which_o they_o act_v single_o in_o their_o several_a charge_n and_o that_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n be_v their_o subject_n oblige_v in_o all_o duty_n to_o they_o as_o much_o when_o conas_a disjoined_n for_o as_o dr._n hammond_n answer_v the_o catholic_n gentleman_n 28._o gentleman_n p._n 27_o 28._o in_o clear_v of_o himself_o that_o his_o mention_v of_o schism_n against_o bishop_n metropolitan_o and_o primat_n involve_v also_o schism_n against_o the_o council_n compound_v of_o all_o these_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o this_o power_n which_o several_o belong_v to_o these_o bishop_n be_v unite_v in_o that_o of_o the_o council_n compound_v of_o they_o and_o so_o the_o despise_n of_o that_o the_o power_n of_o such_o council_n be_v a_o offence_n under_o the_o first_o sort_n of_o schism_n and_o a_o breach_n of_o the_o subordination_n to_o all_o the_o rank_n of_o our_o ecclesiastical_a superior_n what_o authority_n then_o and_o whence_o they_o have_v it_o single_o they_o have_v unite_v neither_o be_v this_o their_o authority_n either_o in_o their_o several_a province_n or_o in_o their_o synod_n delegative_a save_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n §_o 63_o 2._o next_o that_o they_o be_v not_o pretend_v to_o have_v their_o infallibility_n in_o necessary_n by_o any_o assignment_n from_o the_o church_n diffusive_a but_o that_o they_o have_v it_o immediate_o from_o the_o divine_a promise_n make_v principal_o and_o primary_o to_o they_o to_o who_o be_v commit_v the_o feed_n of_o our_o lord_n sheep_n for_o ever_o and_o the_o guide_v they_o in_o the_o right_a way_n of_o which_o see_v disc_n 1._o §_o 7.14_o and_o that_o the_o church_n diffusive_a be_v therefore_o unerring_a for_o ever_o in_o necessary_n because_o these_o guide_n be_v so_o and_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n can_v prevail_v against_o the_o church_n the_o building_n be_v because_o in_o the_o chief_a place_n they_o shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o these_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n the_o rock_n and_o foundation_n whereon_o it_o be_v build_v and_o if_o such_o promise_n make_v primary_o to_o they_o then_o sure_o make_v to_o they_o in_o this_o their_o most_o comprehensive_a capacity_n when_o all_o join_v together_o if_o at_o any_o time_n the_o church_n in_o the_o act_n 28._o act_n cap._n 15_o 28._o may_v use_v the_o stile_n visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritui_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la then_o in_o their_o general_a assembly_n and_o when_o they_o be_v collecti_fw-la in_o unum_fw-la 25._o unum_fw-la ver_fw-la 25._o every_o small_a meeting_n of_o they_o or_o also_o every_o single_a person_n seem_v muchless_a capable_a thereof_o and_o if_o this_o inerrability_n necessary_a to_o they_o in_o any_o manner_n at_o all_o most_o necessary_a in_o these_o high_a court_n to_o which_o ultimate_o all_o other_o do_v appeal_n and_o who_o law_n all_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v see_v before_o §_o 8._o §_o 94_o 3_o as_o to_o the_o convening_n and_o composure_n of_o this_o conjunct_a judicature_n of_o the_o clergy_n i_o answer_v 1_o that_o these_o church_n governor_n be_v by_o our_o lord_n and_o apostolical_a constitution_n place_v in_o a_o due_a subordination_n one_o to_o another_o 24._o another_o see_v disc_n 2._o §._o 23_o 24._o and_o several_a superior_n endue_v with_o power_n to_o assemble_v they_o in_o great_a or_o lesser_a body_n as_o the_o business_n require_v and_o time_n permit_v these_o superior_n be_v sometime_o assist_v herein_o by_o the_o secular_a power_n as_o in_o the_o time_n after_o constantine_n yet_o sometime_o also_o without_o they_o as_o in_o the_o age_n precede_v constantine_n the_o diocesan_n synod_n be_v convene_v by_o the_o bishop_n provincial_a or_o national_a by_o the_o metropolitan_a or_o primate_n and_o general_n by_o the_o prime_a patriarch_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o chief_a apostolic_a see_n for_n why_o not_o a_o ecclesiastical_a person_n have_v the_o right_n of_o call_v a_o general_n council_n as_o well_o as_o the_o metropolitan_a of_o a_o provincial_a synod_n the_o primate_n of_o a_o national_a and_o as_o dr._n field_n ascend_v high_o the_o patriarch_n of_o a_o patriarchal_a '_o for_o it_o be_v evident_a say_v he_o 518._o he_o p._n 668._o &_o p._n 518._o that_o there_o be_v a_o power_n in_o bishop_n metropolitan_o primate_fw-la and_o patriarch_n to_o call_v episcopal_a provincial_a national_a and_o patriarchal_a synod_n yet_o the_o last_o of_o which_o consist_v of_o the_o bishop_n live_v under_o the_o temporal_a government_n of_o several_a prince_n and_o that_o neither_o so_o depend_v of_o and_o subject_a to_o the_o power_n of_o prince_n but_o that_o when_o they_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o faith_n i_o add_v by_o the_o same_o reason_n or_o enemy_n to_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n they_o may_v exercise_v the_o same_o without_o their_o consent_n or_o privity_n and_o may_v subject_v they_o that_o refuse_v to_o obey_v their_o summons_n to_o such_o punishment_n as_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n do_v prescribe_v in_o case_n of_o such_o contempt_n or_o wilful_a negligence_n thus_o he_o 2._o next_o that_o these_o conjunct_a proceed_n and_o judicature_n of_o the_o church-guide_n in_o great_a cause_n do_v appear_v also_o to_o be_v sufficien_o allow_v and_o authorize_v by_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o apostle_n both_o *_o from_o those_o text_n which_o mention_n and_o refer_v to_o a_o conjunct_a authority_n as_o from_o mat._n 18.17_o tell_v the_o church_n which_o signify_v a_o presence_n of_o more_o than_o one_o of_o those_o who_o be_v to_o
but_o here_o seem_v no_o necessity_n of_o pretend_v any_o other_o infallibility_n in_o these_o motive_n than_o catholic_n writer_n have_v former_o maintain_v and_o the_o adversary_n also_o allow_v on_o which_o a_o acquire_v or_o humane_a faith_n secure_o rest_v these_o motive_n carry_v such_o a_o evidence_n with_o they_o as_o no_o other_o religion_n differ_v from_o the_o christian_a nor_o in_o christianity_n any_o sect_n divide_v from_o the_o catholic_n communion_n can_v upon_o any_o rational_a account_n equal_a 2_o that_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n ground_v on_o divine_a revelation_n and_o believe_v by_o a_o divine_a faith_n be_v a_o main_a ground_n and_o pillar_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n for_o any_o other_o article_n thereof_o that_o be_v establish_v by_o the_o same_o church_n definition_n where_o the_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n apostolic_a be_v to_o he_o but_o i_o say_v not_o the_o church_n doubtful_a of_o which_o ground_n and_o assurance_n of_o such_o point_n believe_v by_o catholic_n from_o the_o church_n infallible_a authority_n the_o protestant_n faith_n be_v destitute_a 3_o that_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o such_o article_n ground_v thus_o on_o the_o church_n infallible_a authority_n be_v by_o this_o ground_v also_o on_o divine_a revelation_n where_v note_n that_o resolve_v faith_n into_o the_o church_n infallibility_n i_o mean_v as_o the_o church_n be_v declare_v thus_o infallible_a in_o necessary_n by_o god_n word_n or_o divine_a revelation_n whether_o write_v the_o scripture_n or_o unwritten_a tradition_n apostolical_a or_o into_o apostolical_a tradition_n or_o into_o scripture_n be_v in_o general_a all_o one_o and_o the_o same_o resolution_n i._n e._n into_o divine_a revelation_n and_o ultimate_o be_v only_o believe_v a_o thing_n because_o god_n say_v it_o say_v it_o in_o the_o scripture_n or_o also_o out_o of_o they_o by_o his_o apostle_n or_o by_o the_o church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n by_o it_o i_o say_v as_o declare_v by_o god_n word_n to_o be_v also_o infallible_o assist_v true_o to_o relate_v and_o expound_v what_o the_o apostle_n or_o scripture_n have_v former_o say_v where_o still_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n be_v into_o the_o same_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n deliver_v by_o these_o and_o not_o into_o any_o proper_a authority_n or_o infallibility_n of_o the_o deliverer_n and_o when_o we_o say_v we_o resolve_v our_o faith_n into_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o present_a church_n or_o of_o the_o apostle_n we_o mean_v into_o god_n infallible_a word_n deliver_v mediate_o by_o the_o one_o or_o immediate_o by_o the_o other_o and_o whilst_o to_o one_o that_o ask_v i_o why_o i_o believe_v the_o scripture_n i_o answer_v because_o those_o who_o write_v they_o be_v assist_v by_o god_n spirit_n to_o deliver_v to_o man_n those_o divine_a revelation_n and_o again_o to_o one_o that_o ask_v i_o why_o i_o believe_v the_o church_n i_o answer_v because_o the_o church_n be_v for_o ever_o assist_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o god_n faithful_o to_o relate_v and_o expound_v these_o former_a divine_a revelation_n deliver_v by_o those_o who_o write_v the_o scripture_n in_o all_o necessary_a matter_n of_o faith_n here_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o if_o one_o of_o these_o resolution_n be_v into_o divine_a revelation_n impart_v and_o communicate_v to_o man_n by_o god_n spirit_n so_o must_v the_o other_o though_o the_o manner_n of_o convey_v they_o to_o we_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n spirit_n be_v different_a as_o be_v explain_v before_o §_o 109._o and_o have_v the_o new_a testament_n scripture_n not_o be_v write_v as_o they_o may_v have_v be_v not_o write_v without_o nullify_a the_o being_n of_o christian_a religion_n than_o all_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n will_v have_v be_v only_o into_o the_o unwritten_a testimony_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o from_o they_o of_o the_o church_n follow_v they_o to_o which_o church_n for_o ever_o though_o without_o any_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n the_o same_o promise_n must_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v be_v make_v for_o the_o write_n of_o these_o scripture_n sure_o be_v no_o cause_n of_o these_o promise_n and_o next_o these_o promise_n may_v also_o have_v be_v make_v know_v to_o christian_n by_o tradition_n apostolical_a relate_v only_o by_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o the_o same_o credence_n must_v have_v be_v give_v to_o this_o tradition_n apostolical_a relate_v by_o the_o church_n concern_v such_o promise_n make_v to_o it_o as_o be_v now_o give_v to_o the_o scripture_n testify_v it_o 4_o yet_o that_o this_o church-infallibility_a or_o that_o divine_a revelation_n which_o establish_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_o the_o first_o or_o the_o ultimate_a divine_a revelation_n into_o which_o every_o catholick_n faith_n concern_v any_o particular_a point_n of_o his_o belief_n be_v necessary_o resolve_v for_o the_o divine_a faith_n of_o several_a person_n concern_v particular_a point_n may_v have_v a_o various_a resolution_n as_o they_o come_v by_o divers_a way_n or_o from_o divers_a principle_n to_o believe_v it_o and_o one_o article_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v save_o believe_v without_o the_o present_a knowledge_n or_o belief_n of_o another_o whereon_o it_o have_v dependence_n as_o one_o may_v believe_v with_o a_o divine_a faith_n either_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o church_n infallibility_n from_o apostolical_a tradition_n one_o before_o the_o other_o as_o they_o happen_v to_o be_v first_o propose_v to_o they_o of_o which_o see_v what_o be_v say_v before_o §_o 128.145_o and_o by_o the_o certainty_n of_o his_o faith_n ground_v thereon_o attain_v eternal_a salvation_n and_o bless_v be_v his_o divine_a majesty_n for_o so_o firm_o establish_v christianity_n one_o these_o two_o sure_a base_n the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n for_o both_o be_v pillar_n of_o truth_n 3.15_o truth_n 1_o tim._n 3.15_o and_o both_o always_o bear_v witness_n as_o to_o it_o so_o also_o to_o one_o another_o and_o what_o thou_o have_v thus_o join_v o_o lord_n let_v no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o separate_v nor_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n ever_o so_o far_o prevail_v against_o they_o as_o that_o any_o shall_v prosper_v in_o their_o endeavour_n to_o build_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o one_o out_o of_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o other_o amen_n §_o thus_o much_o be_v say_v concern_v the_o necessary_a resolution_n of_o a_o catholick_n faith_n conclusion_n the_o conclusion_n and_o in_o satisfaction_n to_o those_o other_o objection_n that_o be_v urge_v against_o a_o live_a ecclesiastical_a infallible_a guide_n in_o all_o necessary_n maintain_v in_o the_o former_a discourse_n and_o affirm_v also_o easy_o discernible_a from_o all_o other_o pretender_n after_o all_o which_o in_o the_o last_o place_n the_o protestant_a reader_n be_v humble_o desire_v sober_o to_o consider_v with_o himself_o whether_o if_o indeed_o there_o be_v such_o a_o catholic_n unfailing_a guide_n as_o be_v here_o pretend_a and_o that_o church_n also_o who_o conduct_n he_o have_v renounce_v be_v it_o who_o our_o lord_n have_v leave_v amid_o the_o distraction_n of_o so_o many_o sect_n and_o opinion_n to_o bring_v man_n by_o a_o sure_a way_n to_o heaven_n whether_o i_o say_v notwithstanding_o all_o those_o reason_n and_o argument_n that_o have_v be_v here_o and_o be_v elsewhere_o by_o catholic_n frequent_o urge_v in_o demonstration_n thereof_o yet_o his_o ignorance_n thereof_o still_o remain_v so_o innocent_a and_o invincible_a that_o he_o dare_v rely_v on_o this_o plea_n at_o the_o appearance_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o his_o live_n and_o die_v irreconcile_a unto_o she_o because_o no_o sufficient_a evidence_n have_v be_v leave_v he_o to_o discern_v she_o and_o next_o to_o consider_v whether_o if_o indeed_o she_o be_v what_o here_o she_o be_v pretend_v there_o can_v be_v any_o secular_a interest_n so_o valuable_a as_o any_o way_n to_o recompense_v the_o loss_n he_o sustain_v in_o his_o present_a separation_n from_o this_o church_n by_o forego_v all_o that_o mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o growth_n in_o grace_n and_o advantage_n of_o a_o holy_a life_n which_o he_o may_v with_o great_a spiritual_a content_n enjoy_v in_o her_o happy_a bosom_n of_o which_o advantage_n because_o they_o be_v by_o few_o of_o those_o depart_v from_o this_o church_n so_o well_o weigh_v as_o they_o ought_v for_o a_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a i_o beg_v leave_v not_o to_o stay_v only_o in_o universals_z but_o to_o represent_v some_o particular_n to_o the_o beget_n in_o he_o by_o the_o aid_n of_o the_o divine_a grace_n a_o holy_a emulation_n and_o longing_n for_o the_o re-fruition_n of_o they_o and_o a_o great_a resentment_n of_o his_o present_a impediment_n and_o defect_n §_o 155_o let_v he_o then_o in_o the_o name_n and_o fear_n of_o god_n consider_v the_o great_a benefit_n as_o to_o the_o work_n of_o his_o salvation_n which_o he_o may_v happy_o enjoy_v in_o this_o church_n by_o these_o particular_n follow_v *_o by_o
apostolicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la dejicere_fw-la conantur_fw-la si_fw-mi enim_fw-la talis_fw-la licentia_fw-la cuilibet_fw-la concedatur_fw-la paulatim_fw-la totum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la corpus_fw-la destruedur_fw-la and_o they_o not_o acquiesce_v but_o a_o three_o time_n reassault_v he_o and_o impose_v as_o he_o think_v a_o sense_n on_o the_o scripture_n contrary_a to_o the_o traditional_a and_o also_o borrow_a weapon_n out_o of_o the_o greek_a father_n as_o they_o misapply_v they_o against_o he_o he_o return_v a_o three_o answer_n in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o which_o he_o thus_o reprehend_v they_o in_o particular_a concern_v these_o point_n praeterea_fw-la say_v he_o invocationem_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la vanam_fw-la existimatis_fw-la &_o imagine_v eorum_fw-la venerandasque_fw-la reliquias_fw-la &_o adorationem_fw-la rejicitis_fw-la rejicitis_fw-la item_n mutuam_fw-la alterius_fw-la ad_fw-la alterum_fw-la 1._o ad_fw-la sacerdotem_fw-la see_v hierem._n respon_n cap._n 11._o confessionem_fw-la praeterea_fw-la monasticam_fw-la vitam_fw-la angelis_fw-la aequalem_fw-la and_o then_o disallow_v their_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n contrary_a to_o their_o meaning_n now_o somewhat_o more_o provoke_v he_o say_v chrysostomus_n &_o ipsius_fw-la simile_n divini_fw-la viri_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la pleni_fw-la divina_fw-la dicta_fw-la sic_fw-la interpretati_fw-la sunt_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la habemus_fw-la caeterique_fw-la traditiones_fw-la tale_n cu_z approbassent_v ut_fw-la necessaria_fw-la &_o pia_fw-la continuâ_fw-la successione_n per_fw-la manus_fw-la veluti_fw-la tradentes_fw-la ad_fw-la nos_fw-la usque_fw-la propagarunt_fw-la quarum_fw-la aliquas_fw-la vetus_fw-la etiam_fw-la roma_fw-la observat_fw-la &_o nobiscum_fw-la amplectitur_fw-la aliquas_fw-la he_o say_v for_o several_a point_n there_o be_v in_o which_o the_o greek_n oppose_v the_o roman_a church_n wherein_o the_o protestant_n do_v side_n with_o the_o roman_a against_o they_o but_o among_o these_o aliquas_fw-la wherein_o both_o the_o greek_a and_o roman_a church_n agree_v against_o the_o protestant_n be_v all_o the_o forementioned_a point_n and_o many_o more_o vnde_fw-la igitur_fw-la vos_fw-la rectiùs_fw-la &_o meliùs_fw-la vetere_fw-la nouâque_fw-la româ_fw-la sapuistis_fw-la ut_fw-la verorum_fw-la theologerum_fw-la scriptis_fw-la relictis_fw-la vestra_fw-la ista_fw-la meliora_fw-la potioraque_fw-la duceretis_fw-la et_fw-la schismata_fw-la quae_fw-la apud_fw-la vos_fw-la sunt_fw-la quae_fw-la multi_fw-la variique_fw-la generis_fw-la sunt_fw-la illa_fw-la scilicet_fw-la lutheranorum_n hebraei_n aliqui_fw-la ut_fw-la fama_fw-la fert_fw-la pietatis_fw-la simulatione_fw-la introduxerunt_fw-la ac_fw-la disseminaverunt_fw-la et_fw-la nunc_fw-la etiam_fw-la sicut_fw-la oculis_fw-la cernitur_fw-la proficiunt_fw-la in_o pejus_fw-la &_o quotidie_fw-la crescunt_fw-la cum_fw-la quibus_fw-la equidem_fw-la nos_fw-la prorsùs_fw-la non_fw-la communicantes_fw-la quicquam_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la mysteria_fw-la immota_fw-la servamus_fw-la manentes_fw-la in_o iis_fw-la quae_fw-la dicta_fw-la sunt_fw-la à_fw-la successoribus_fw-la praeconum_fw-la dei_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la rogamus_fw-la it_z aque_fw-la vos_fw-la ne_fw-la posthac_fw-la labores_fw-la nobis_fw-la exhibeatis_fw-la nam_fw-la theologor_n qui_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la lumina_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la alias_o aliter_fw-la tractatis_fw-la &_o verbis_fw-la quidem_fw-la honoratio_fw-la eos_fw-la extollitisque_fw-la factis_fw-la verò_fw-la rejicitis_fw-la armaque_fw-la nostra_fw-la inutilia_fw-la nobis_fw-la efficere_fw-la vultis_fw-la &c_n &c_n quamobrem_fw-la quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la vos_fw-la attinet_fw-la liberastis_fw-la nos_fw-la curis_fw-la vestram_fw-la ergo_fw-la viam_fw-la euntes_fw-la ne_fw-la amplius_fw-la de_fw-fr dogmatibus_fw-la sed_fw-la amicitiae_fw-la tantum_fw-la causâ_fw-la si_fw-la volueritis_fw-la scribite_fw-la §_o 167_o and_o much_o what_o the_o same_o tenant_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n as_o be_v vindicate_v by_o hieremias_n you_o may_v find_v acknowledge_v by_o sir_n edwin_n sandys_n in_o his_o relation_n of_o the_o west_n relig._n p._n 233_o &c_n &c_n with_o rome_n say_v he_o the_o greek_a church_n concur_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o general_o in_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o afterward_o p._n 238_o he_o say_v for_o the_o form_n and_o ceremony_n thereof_o they_o much_o resemble_v the_o latin_a their_o altar_n they_o enclose_v from_o the_o people_n that_o the_o arcana_fw-la of_o those_o their_o ineffable_a cross_n and_o converting_n may_v not_o be_v prostitute_v and_o pollute_v by_o a_o unsanctified_a view_n whereas_o the_o roman_n lie_v fair_a and_o open_a they_o elevate_v the_o host_n forward_o and_o near_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o latin_n do_v backward_o and_o at_o the_o altar_n and_o for_o their_o liturgy_n 235._o liturgy_n p._n 235._o he_o confess_v that_o they_o be_v the_o same_o that_o in_o old_a time_n namely_o s._n basil_n and_o s._n chrysostom_n and_o s._n gregory_n translate_v and_o these_o without_o any_o bend_n of_o they_o to_o that_o change_n of_o language_n which_o their_o tongue_n have_v also_o suffer_v of_o which_o brerewood_n in_o his_o inquiry_n c._n 2._o p._n 12._o give_v this_o account_n that_o the_o difference_n be_v become_v so_o great_a between_o the_o present_a and_o the_o ancient_a greek_a that_o their_o liturgy_n yet_o read_v in_o the_o ancient_a greek_a tongue_n namely_o that_o of_o basil_n the_o long_o on_o the_o sabbath_n and_o solemn_a day_n and_o that_o of_o chrysostom_n the_o brief_a on_o common_a day_n be_v not_o understand_v or_o but_o little_a of_o it_o by_o the_o vulgar_a people_n and_o the_o skilful_a in_o the_o learned_a greek_n can_v understand_v the_o vulgar_a thus_o he_o for_o the_o language_n now_o for_o the_o matter_n if_o you_o please_v to_o peruse_v this_o their_o modern_a liturgy_n and_o church_n service_n in_o goar_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o rituale_fw-la graecorum_n juxta_fw-la usum_fw-la oriontalis_n ecclestae_fw-la print_v at_o paris_n 1647._o or_o in_o that_o print_v before_o at_o venice_n 16_o 9_o and_o to_o compare_v it_o with_o ancient_a copy_n of_o s._n basil_n and_o s._n chrysostom_n missal_n and_o again_o compare_v both_o with_o the_o roman_a you_o shall_v find_v they_o either_o agree_v or_o where_o they_o d●ffer_v one_o from_o another_o the_o greek_a as_o much_o offensive_a to_o protestant_n as_o the_o latin_a service_n so_o that_o the_o reformation_n must_v be_v confess_v to_o be_v make_v against_o the_o publ●ck_a liturgy_n both_o of_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a 1._o of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n to_o go_v on_o they_o agree_v say_v he_o in_o pray_v to_o saint_n in_o auricular_a confession_n in_o offer_v of_o sacrifice_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a in_o these_o without_o any_o or_o no_o material_a difference_n they_o hold_v purgatory_n not_o ●●y_o any_o outward_a torment_n as_o he_o explain_v himself_o afterw●rd_n ●ut_v that_o ●he_n ●ou_fw-mi be_v not_o receive_v into_o glory_n till_o by_o a_o extreme_a compunction_n and_o a●gu●●_n of_o mind_n they_o have_v wear_v out_o those_o stain_n with_o which_o their_o ●ins_n doe lea_v they_o as_o for_o the_o controversy_n between_o they_o and_o the_o western_a ●_z whether_o such_o suffering_n be_v by_o fire_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n never_o determine_v one_o way_n or_o other_o i●_n a●y_a council_n and_o the_o worship_v of_o picture_n kneel_v to_o two_o that_o of_o christ_n and_o of_o our_o lady_n pass_v over_o the_o rest_n with_o a_o ordinary_a reverence_n in_o sum_n they_o still_o retain_v those_o opinion_n which_o grow_v in●o_o the_o church_n before_o the_o separation_n between_o the_o greek_n and_o the_o latin_n which_o separation_n be_v first_o make_v about_o the_o year_n 800_o but_o the_o protestant_n condemn_v many_o roman_a tenant_n and_o practice_n from_o 600._o and_o then_o common_a to_o they_o with_o the_o greek_n and_o all_o the_o ceremony_n which_o be_v then_o common_a to_o both_o they_o still_o retain_v as_o their_o cross_n taper_n with_o certain_a other_o thus_o he_o §_o 168_o as_o for_o the_o difference_n mention_v by_o sandys_n between_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n in_o other_o point_n first_o i_o appeal_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ingenuous_a reader_n whether_o these_o point_n wherein_o they_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o agree_v be_v not_o the_o chief_a and_o the_o main_a of_o those_o which_o be_v debate_v between_o the_o reform_a and_o roman_a church_n again_o many_o of_o those_o wherein_o he_o mention_n they_o to_o differ_v be_v of_o small_a moment_n as_o their_o use_v leaven_n in_o their_o host_n which_o the_o latin_n avoid_v their_o tolerate_a no_o image_n in_o their_o church_n when_o as_o it_o be_v grant_v before_o that_o they_o use_v picture_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v their_o use_v no_o round_a counter_n or_o bead_n for_o pray_v by_o tale_n these_o being_n bring_v up_o in_o the_o west_n after_o the_o division_n of_o those_o churches_n last_o as_o for_o other_o thing_n that_o seem_v of_o more_o consequence_n wherein_o this_o author_n make_v these_o two_o church_n to_o dissent_v see_v they_o more_o full_o collect_v by_o dr._n field_n in_o his_o 3._o l._n 1._o c._n and_o speak_v to_o below_o §_o 181._o ●n_n several_a of_o which_o indeed_o the_o roman_a tenant_n be_v mistake_v i_o mean_v the_o tenant_n of_o their_o council_n and_o of_o
c._n 7._o or_o if_o distinct_a a_o very_a small_a quantity_n of_o the_o blood_n with_o very_o great_a caution_n give_v in_o the_o bottom_n of_o a_o spoon_n for_o the_o second_o the_o cross_n and_o picture_n and_o a_o due_a veneration_n of_o they_o be_v use_v as_o well_o in_o these_o as_o in_o the_o greek_a and_o roman_a church_n see_v for_o the_o veneration_n of_o picture_n in_o the_o abyssine_a church_n according_a in_o most_o thing_n with_o the_o egyptian_n thom._n a_o jesus_n l._n 7._o p._n 380._o and_o the_o priest_n and_o religious_a be_v say_v to_o carry_v always_o a_o cross_n in_o their_o hand_n 348._o hand_n roger_n terre_fw-fr saint_n p._n 348._o and_o for_o the_o use_n of_o cross_v see_v the_o liturgy_n for_o the_o three_o monastic_a vow_n and_o celibacy_n of_o the_o clergy_n the_o first_o of_o these_o can_v be_v deny_v to_o be_v practise_v in_o they_o all_o 1._o §._o 179._o n._n 1._o and_o from_o this_o therefore_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o second_o i_o mean_v of_o a_o injunction_n of_o celibacy_n to_o the_o clergy_n be_v justify_v as_o have_v be_v show_v before_o §_o 164_o and_o a_o necessity_n of_o such_o celibacy_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la be_v not_o affirm_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o for_o this_o second_o the_o practice_n in_o these_o church_n be_v much_o what_o the_o same_o as_o in_o the_o greek_a viz._n that_o person_n marry_v be_v free_o admit_v to_o be_v priest_n but_o none_o after_o make_v priest_n suffer_v to_o marry_v which_o be_v a_o yoke_n that_o few_o where_o liberty_n to_o take_v wife_n beforehand_o be_v grant_v have_v a_o firm_a mind_n to_o undergo_v hence_o it_o so_o happen_v that_o most_o of_o the_o secular_a clergy_n in_o these_o other_o church_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o greek_a be_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la marry_v meanwhile_o 9_o meanwhile_o thom._n a_o jesus_n l._n 7._o c._n 9_o the_o regulars_n that_o be_v priest_n do_v live_v always_o in_o celibacy_n and_o so_o do_v all_o the_o bishop_n that_o be_v choose_v out_o of_o regulars_n as_o they_o be_v so_o choose_v most_o frequent_o and_o in_o some_o church_n as_o in_o the_o abyssine_n 347._o abyssine_n terre_fw-fr saint_n p._n 347._o and_o i_o think_v in_o the_o greek_a they_o only_o can_v bechosen_a bishop_n for_o the_o four_o auricular_a or_o sacramental_a confession_n 2._o §._o 179._o n._n 2._o and_o penance_n though_o such_o confession_n in_o few_o or_o none_o of_o these_o church_n wherein_o the_o church-discipline_n in_o such_o a_o commixture_n of_o mahometanism_n and_o heathenism_n be_v much_o decay_v be_v so_o strict_o observe_v as_o in_o the_o roman_a or_o yet_o as_o in_o the_o greek_a church_n either_o as_o to_o their_o make_n it_o so_o often_o as_o they_o receive_v the_o communion_n or_o as_o to_o a_o enumeration_n of_o their_o particular_a fault_n when_o they_o make_v it_o yet_o it_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v altogether_o omit_v or_o disuse_v as_o with_o protestant_n it_o be_v zaga_n zabo_n a_o abyssine_a bishop_n say_v morth_o say_v apud_fw-la damianum_fw-la à_fw-la go_v de_fw-fr ethiopium_n morth_o it_o be_v use_v by_o the_o abyssine_n and_o to_o give_v it_o in_o brerewood_n word_n 166._o word_n inquiry_n p._n 166._o that_o present_o upon_o commission_n of_o sin_n they_o resort_v to_o the_o confessor_n and_o at_o every_o confession_n though_o it_o be_v every_o day_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n again_o that_o mulieres_fw-la gravidae_fw-la ante_fw-la partus_fw-la tempus_fw-la semper_fw-la confitentur_fw-la &_o corpus_fw-la domini_fw-la confessae_fw-la accipiunt_fw-la ut_fw-la infans_fw-la capiens_fw-la inde_fw-la nutrimentum_fw-la ex_fw-la ejus_fw-la communicatione_n sit_fw-la sacratus_fw-la and_o they_o have_v great_a respect_n say_v the_o fr._n recollect_v 361._o recollect_v terre_fw-fr saint_n p._n 361._o to_o all_o the_o sacrament_n and_o as_o for_o confession_n they_o appoint_v rigorous_a penance_n and_o those_o public_a for_o public_a offence_n and_o with_o these_o author_n may_v those_o quote_v by_o daille_n 1._o daille_n de_fw-fr confession_n auriculari_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n 1._o to_o say_v the_o contrary_a well_o agree_v whilst_o they_o speak_v of_o several_a part_n of_o a_o vast_a country_n or_o of_o a_o usual_a omission_n of_o it_o by_o some_o of_o these_o sonthern_a christian_n before_o they_o receive_v for_o all_o receive_v frequent_o viz._n on_o all_o festival_n 371._o festival_n thom._n a_o jesus_n p._n 371._o and_o of_o a_o perfunctory_a performance_n of_o it_o only_o in_o general_n by_o many_o when_o they_o do_v it_o so_o thom._n a_o jesus_n out_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o sidon_n relation_n 387._o relation_n p._n 387._o say_v of_o the_o jacobite_n and_o armenian_n sacramentum_fw-la confessionis_fw-la rarissimè_fw-la not_o nunquam_fw-la apud_fw-la nationes_fw-la illas_fw-la frequentatur_fw-la multique_fw-la not_o omnes_fw-la communicant_a sine_fw-la auriculari_fw-la confession_n and_o of_o the_o cophthites_n 361._o cophthites_n p._n 361._o moris_n non_fw-la est_fw-la ante_fw-la vigesimum_fw-la aut_fw-la circiter_fw-la annum_fw-la unquam_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la paenitentiae_fw-la reciper_n and_o 416._o and_o ib._n p._n 416._o sacramentum_fw-la confes●ionis_fw-la auriculart_n ut_fw-la est_fw-la apud_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la romanam_n confirmationis_fw-la &_o extremae_fw-la vnctionis_fw-la ferè_fw-la non_fw-la agnoscunt_fw-la sacramental_a confession_n therefore_o in_o these_o church_n seem_v rather_o the_o facto_fw-la much_o neglect_a than_o the_o jure_v not_o allow_v or_o require_v and_o look_v rather_o like_o a_o custom_n by_o the_o malignity_n of_o time_n somewhat_o deface_v than_o never_o at_o all_o know_v or_o use_v and_o this_o neglect_n of_o confession_n perhaps_o may_v partly_o arise_v from_o a_o different_a judgement_n they_o have_v of_o mortal_a sin_n the_o only_a necessary_a matter_n of_o confession_n whilst_o they_o account_v some_o few_o of_o the_o great_a only_o such_o §_o 180_o yet_o for_o external_a penance_n and_o austerity_n especial_o in_o the_o monastic_o and_o clergy_n of_o these_o eastern_a and_o southern_a church_n they_o be_v observe_v to_o be_v very_o great_a and_o one_o of_o the_o chief_a cause_n of_o their_o dislike_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n beside_o the_o difference_n which_o they_o have_v in_o several_a other_o ceremony_n of_o religion_n to_o arise_v from_o hence_o that_o they_o see_v many_o of_o they_o in_o such_o corporal_a severity_n more_o remiss_a see_v rogers_n terre_fw-fr saint_n l._n 2._o p._n 335._o and_o thom._n a_o jesus_n l._n 6._o p._n 284._o species_n austerioris_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o eorum_fw-la hieromonachis_n metropolitis_fw-la archiepiscopis_fw-la frequenter_a cernitur_fw-la latino_n contemnendi_fw-la praebet_fw-la occasionem_fw-la etc._n etc._n so_o the_o abyssine_a religious_a and_o bishop_n 347._o bishop_n roger_n terre_fw-fr saint_n l._n 2._o p._n 347._o go_v barefoot_a wear_v haircloth_n never_o eat_v flesh_n and_o in_o lent_n which_o they_o begin_v three_o day_n after_o the_o purification_n and_o other_o fast_n eat_v no_o fish_n or_o white-meat_n make_v only_o one_o meal_n a_o day_n without_o any_o collation_n at_o sunset_n drink_v no_o wine_n though_o when_o they_o happen_v to_o be_v in_o a_o country_n that_o afford_v it_o as_o their_o own_o do_v not_o use_v discipline_n carry_v great_a weight_n about_o their_o body_n see_v much_o what_o the_o same_o abstinence_n of_o the_o greek_a bishop_n and_o monk_n 407._o monk_n ib._n p._n 337._o goar_n eucholog_fw-la p._n 407._o who_o also_o keep_v four_o lent_n or_o solemn_a fast_n in_o the_o year_n add_v to_o we_o that_o of_o advent_n another_o from_o the_o first_o of_o august_n to_o the_o assumption_n of_o our_o lady_n another_o from_o the_o octave_n of_o whitsuntide_n to_o s._n peter_n day_n the_o same_o be_v say_v of_o the_o maronites_n 426._o maronites_n ib._n p._n 426._o the_o same_o 336._o same_o ib._n p._n 336._o or_o more_o of_o the_o armenian_a bishop_n and_o religious_a never_o eat_v flesh_n not_o indulge_v themselves_o in_o their_o lent_n fish_n white-meat_n or_o so_o much_o as_o oil_n or_o any_o thing_n boil_v hence_o be_v all_o these_o much_o displease_v with_o the_o western_a liberty_n of_o use_v fish_n and_o wine_n and_o collation_n in_o lent_n and_o of_o several_a religious_a order_n eat_v flesh_n out_o of_o it_o from_o what_o have_v be_v say_v then_o may_v be_v discover_v the_o defect_n of_o that_o summary_n account_n which_o after_o a_o long_a discourse_n dr._n field_n in_o l._n 1._o c._n 1._o p._n 75._o give_v of_o the_o agreement_n both_o of_o the_o greek_a §_o 181_o and_o other_o eastern_a church_n with_o the_o protestant_n in_o all_o the_o principal_a modern_a controversy_n where_o he_o thus_o inform_v his_o reader_n 1_o say_v he_o they_o all_o deny_v and_o impugn_v that_o supreme_a universality_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n which_o the._n bishop_n of_o rome_n claim_v of_o this_o see_v below_o §_o 186._o the_o greek_n allow_v though_o not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o pope_n claim_v yet_o more_o than_o i_o think_v many_o protestant_n will_v consent_v to_o 2_o
with_o this_o reservation_n unless_o on_o the_o other_o side_n there_o appear_v evidence_n to_o he_o in_o god_n word_n now_o of_o the_o evidence_n of_o scripture_n in_o this_o point_n on_o his_o side_n that_o he_o have_v no_o doubt_n §_o 17._o the_o iii_o conference_n his_o plea_n for_o his_o not_o hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o definition_n of_o lawful_a general_n council_n the_o just_a condition_n thereof_o observe_v §_o 18._o that_o he_o conceive_v he_o owe_v no_o obedience_n to_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a 1._o because_o this_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v a_o lawful_a general_n council_n with_o so_o much_o certainty_n as_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o ground_n of_o his_o faith_n as_o appear_v by_o those_o many_o question_n mention_v by_o mr._n chilling-worth_n stillingfleet_n and_o other_o protestant_n wherein_o he_o must_v first_o be_v satisfy_v concern_v it_o which_o see_v disc_n 3._o §_o 86._o &c_n &c_n §_o 18._o 2._o because_o though_o it_o be_v a_o general_n council_n yet_o it_o may_v err_v even_o in_o necessary_n if_o it_o be_v not_o universal_o accept_v as_o he_o can_v show_v it_o be_v not_o 3._o that_o though_o yield_v to_o be_v general_o accept_v it_o may_v err_v still_o in_o non-necessaries_a and_o that_o protestant_n can_v prove_v this_o point_n to_o be_v otherwise_o 4._o that_o the_o leader_n of_o this_o council_n be_v plain_o a_o party_n contestingt_fw-fr his_o for_o many_o year_n before_o with_o the_o other_o side_n condemn_v and_o be_v judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n 5._o all_o these_o exception_n cancel_v and_o obedience_n grant_v due_a to_o this_o council_n yet_o that_o so_o there_o be_v due_a to_o it_o not_o that_o of_o assent_n but_o only_o of_o silence_n §_o 19_o 6._o but_o yet_o not_o that_o of_o silence_n neither_o from_o he_o consider_v his_o present_a persuasion_n that_o indeed_o the_o affirmative_a in_o this_o point_n be_v a_o error_n manifest_a and_o intolerable_a concern_v which_o matter_n his_o party_n have_v long_o complain_v to_o their_o superior_n and_o produce_v sufficient_a evidence_n yet_o these_o have_v proceed_v to_o no_o redress_n of_o it_o §_o 20._o 7._o but_o yet_o that_o he_o will_v submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o future_a council_n if_o it_o right_o consider_v the_o reason_n of_o his_o tenant_n decree_v that_o which_o be_v according_a to_o god_n word_n and_o he_o be_v convince_v thereof_o §_o 22._o the_o iv_o conference_n his_o plea_n for_o his_o not_o be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n §_o 23._o that_o he_o can_v right_o according_a to_o protestant_a principle_n be_v accuse_v as_o guilty_a of_o heresy_n for_o several_a reason_n 1._o because_o protestant_n hold_v heresy_n to_o be_v a_o obstinate_a defence_n of_o some_o error_n against_o a_o fundamental_a he_o think_v from_o hence_o his_o tenant_n free_v from_o be_v a_o heresy_n as_o long_o as_o in_o silence_n he_o retain_v it_o unless_o he_o engage_v further_o to_o a_o public_a pertinacious_a maintain_v thereof_o §_o 23._o 2._o fundamental_o vary_v according_a to_o particular_a person_n and_o sufficient_a proposal_n none_o can_v conclude_v this_o point_n in_o the_o affirmative_a to_o be_v as_o to_o he_o a_o fundamental_a or_o of_o the_o truth_n which_o he_o have_v have_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n 3._o that_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n declare_v some_o point_n heresy_n do_v not_o necessary_o argue_v that_o it_o be_v so_o because_o they_o may_v err_v in_o fundamental_o or_o at_o least_o in_o distinguish_v they_o from_o other_o point_n §_o 26._o 4._o that_o he_o can_v have_v no_o autocatacrisie_n or_o obstinacy_n in_o a_o dissent_v from_o their_o definition_n till_o he_o be_v either_o actual_o convince_v or_o at_o least_o have_v have_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n either_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o such_o point_n define_v or_o that_o such_o council_n have_v authority_n to_o require_v submission_n of_o judgement_n and_o assent_v to_o their_o definition_n of_o which_o conviction_n or_o sufficient_a proposal_n that_o vary_v much_o according_a to_o the_o differ_a condition_n of_o several_a person_n as_o to_o himself_o none_o can_v judge_v save_o himself_o and_o consequent_o neither_o can_v they_o judge_v of_o his_o guilt_n of_o heresy_n ib._n the_o v._o conference_n his_o plea_n for_o his_o not_o be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n §_o 28._o 1._o that_o the_o socinian_n church_n have_v not_o forsake_v the_o whole_a church_n catholic_n or_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o it_o but_o only_o leave_v one_o part_n of_o it_o that_o be_v corrupt_v and_o reform_v another_o part_n i._n e._n themselves_z or_o that_o he_o and_o the_o socinian_n church_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n they_o have_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o whole_a because_o not_o from_o themselves_o §_o 28._o 2._o that_o their_o separation_n be_v for_o a_o error_n unjust_o impose_v upon_o they_o as_o a_o condition_n of_o communion_n the_o schism_n be_v not_o they_o who_o make_v the_o separation_n but_o they_o who_o cause_v it_o §_o 29._o beside_o that_o what_o ever_o the_o truth_n of_o thing_n be_v yet_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v require_v by_o any_o church_n to_o profess_v they_o believe_v what_o they_o do_v not_o their_o separation_n can_v be_v say_v causeless_a and_o so_o schism_n §_o 32._o 3._o that_o though_o he_o and_o his_o party_n have_v forsake_v the_o external_a communion_n of_o all_o other_o church_n yet_o not_o the_o internal_a in_o which_o they_o remain_v still_o unite_v to_o they_o both_o in_o that_o internal_a communion_n of_o charity_n in_o not_o condemn_v all_o other_o church_n as_o non-catholick_n and_o in_o that_o of_o faith_n in_o all_o essential_o and_o fundamental_o and_o in_o all_o such_o point_n wherein_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n consist_v §_o 30._o 4._o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o consubstantiality_n for_o which_o they_o depart_v be_v deny_v by_o they_o to_o be_v any_o fundamental_a nor_o can_v the_o church_n from_o which_o they_o depart_v for_o it_o be_v a_o competent_a judge_n against_o they_o that_o it_o be_v so_o §_o 34._o 5._o that_o though_o they_o be_v separater_n from_o the_o roman_a yet_o not_o from_o the_o reform_a church_n which_o church_n leave_v man_n to_o the_o liberty_n of_o their_o own_o judgement_n nor_o require_v any_o internal_a assent_n to_o their_o doctrine_n in_o which_o thing_n these_o blame_n the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n save_v only_o conditional_a if_o any_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o or_o not_o convince_v of_o the_o contrary_n §_o 35._o 6._o in_o fine_a that_o for_o enjoy_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o protestant_a communion_n he_o make_v as_o full_a a_o profession_n of_o conformity_n to_o her_o doctrine_n as_o mr._n chillingworth_n have_v do_v in_o several_a place_n of_o his_o book_n which_o yet_o be_v accept_v as_o sufficient_a 〈◊〉_d 41._o the_o four_o discourse_n conference_n i._n the_o socinian_n protestant_a plea_n for_o his_o not_o hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n §_o 1_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v deliver_v in_o the_o three_o former_a discourse_n concern_v the_o invalidity_n of_o the_o protestant_n guide_v for_o preserve_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o suppress_v heresy_n may_v be_v clearly_o see_v and_o more_o serious_o consider_v i_o have_v think_v fit_a in_o this_o for_o a_o example_n to_o show_v what_o apology_n a_o socinian_n upon_o the_o forementioned_a protestant-position_n may_v return_v for_o himself_o to_o a_o protestant_a endeavour_v to_o reduce_v he_o to_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o use_v any_o of_o these_o five_o motive_n thereto_o the_o testimony_n 1._o of_o scripture_n 2._o of_o catholic_n church_n 3._o of_o her_o council_n 4._o the_o danger_n of_o heresy_n 5._o the_o danger_n of_o schism_n in_o which_o will_v not_o be_v think_v to_o go_v about_o to_o equal_v all_o other_o protestant-opinion_n to_o the_o malignity_n of_o the_o socinian_n error_n but_o only_o to_o show_v that_o several_a defence_n which_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o former_a motive_n protestant_n use_v for_o retain_v they_o if_o these_o be_v think_v just_a and_o reasonable_a the_o socinian_o may_v use_v the_o same_o for_o much_o grosser_n tenant_n for_o suppose_v a_o protestant_n first_fw-mi concern_v the_o scripture_n question_v a_o socinian_n in_o this_o manner_n prot._n why_o do_v you_o to_o the_o great_a danger_n of_o your_o soul_n and_o salvation_n not_o believe_v god_n the_o son_n to_o be_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o essence_n and_o substance_n with_o god_n the_o father_n it_o be_v so_o principal_a a_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n deliver_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n soc._n to_o give_v you_o a_o satisfactory_a account_n of_o this_o matter_n i_o do_v believe_v with_o other_o christian_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o with_o other_o protestant_n that_o they_o be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o
church_n where_o the_o dr._n seem_v to_o grant_v these_o two_o thing_n that_o all_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n declare_v against_o heresy_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o all_o such_o as_o oppose_v her_o judgement_n be_v heretic_n but_o only_o he_o add_v that_o they_o be_v not_o heretic_n proper_o or_o formal_o for_o this_o oppose_v the_o church_n but_o for_o oppose_v the_o scripture_n whilst_o therefore_o the_o formalis_fw-la ratio_fw-la of_o heresy_n be_v dispute_v that_o all_o such_o be_v heretic_n seem_v grant_v and_o the_o same_o dr._n else_o here_o conclude_v thus_o 132._o thus_o p._n 132._o the_o mistaker_n will_v never_o prove_v that_o we_o oppose_v any_o declaration_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n he_o mean_v such_o a_o church_n as_o make_v declaration_n and_o that_o must_v be_v in_o her_o council_n and_o therefore_o he_o do_v unjust_o charge_v we_o with_o heresy_n and_o again_o he_o say_v 103._o say_v p._n 103._o whatsoever_o opinion_n these_o ancient_a writer_n st._n austin_n epiphanius_n and_o other_o conceive_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o common_a or_o approve_a opinion_n of_o christian_n that_o they_o call_v a_o heresy_n because_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o receive_a opinion_n not_o because_o it_o oppose_v any_o formal_a definition_n of_o the_o church_n where_o in_o say_v not_o because_o it_o oppose_v any_o definition_n he_o mean_v not_o only_o because_o for_o whilst_o that_o which_o differ_v from_o the_o receive_a opinion_n of_o the_o church_n be_v account_v a_o heresy_n by_o they_o that_o which_o differ_v from_o a_o formal_a definition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v so_o much_o more_o something_o i_o find_v also_o for_o your_o better_a information_n in_o the_o learned_a dr._n hammond_n 3.11_o hammond_n titus_n 3.11_o comment_v on_o that_o notable_a text_n in_o titus_n a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o heretic_n after_o the_o first_o and_o second_o admonition_n reject_v a_o text_n imply_v contrary_a to_o your_o discourse_n heresy_n discoverable_a and_o censurable_a by_o the_o church_n where_o he_o explain_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d self_n condemn_v not_o to_o signify_v a_o man_n public_a accuse_v or_o condemn_v his_o own_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n for_o that_o condemnation_n will_v rather_o be_v a_o motive_n to_o free_v one_o from_o the_o church_n censure_n nor_o 2_o to_o denote_v one_o that_o offend_v against_o conscience_n and_o though_o he_o know_v he_o be_v in_o the_o wrong_n yet_o hold_v out_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o church_n for_o so_o none_o but_o hypocrite_n will_v be_v heretic_n and_o he_o that_o stand_v out_o against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n in_o the_o pure_a time_n you_o may_v guess_v who_o he_o mean_v shall_v not_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o so_o no_o heretic_n can_v possible_o be_v admonish_v or_o censure_v by_o the_o church_n for_o no_o man_n will_v acknowledge_v of_o himself_o that_o what_o he_o do_v be_v by_o he_o do_v against_o his_o own_o conscience_n the_o plea_n which_o you_o also_o here_o make_v for_o yourself_o but_o to_o be_v a_o expression_n of_o his_o separation_n from_o and_o disobedience_n to_o the_o church_n and_o so_o a_o evidence_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d his_o be_v pervert_v and_o sin_v wilful_o and_o without_o excuse_n 26._o excuse_n see_v more_o protestant_n cite_v to_o this_o purpose_n disc_n 3._o §._o 19_o §_o 26._o what_o say_v you_o to_o this_o soc._n what_o these_o author_n say_v as_o you_o give_v their_o sense_n seem_v to_o i_o contrary_a to_o the_o protestant_a principle_n 1._o principle_n see_v dr._n potter_n p._n 165.167_o dr._n hammond_n of_o heresy_n §_o 7_o n._n 3_o §._o 9_o n._n 8_o des_n of_o l._n faukl_n c._n 1._o p._n 23._o see_n before_o disc_n 3._o §._o 41_o n._n 1._o and_o their_o own_o position_n elsewhere_o neither_o sure_o will_v protestant_n tie_v themselves_o to_o this_o measure_n and_o trial_n of_o autocatacrisy_n for_o since_o they_o say_v that_o lawful_a general_n council_n may_v err_v in_o fundamental_o these_o council_n may_v also_o define_v or_o declare_v something_o heresy_n that_o be_v not_o against_o a_o fundamental_a and_o if_o so_o ay_o though_o in_o this_o self-convinced_n that_o such_o be_v their_o definition_n yet_o be_o most_o free_a from_o heresy_n in_o my_o not_o assent_v to_o it_o or_o if_o they_o err_v intolerable_o in_o oppose_v it_o again_o since_o protestant_n say_v counsel_n may_v err_v in_o distinguish_a fundamental_o these_o counsel_n may_v err_v also_o in_o discern_a heresy_n which_o be_v a_o error_n against_o a_o fundamental_a from_o other_o error_n that_o be_v against_o nonfundamentals_a again_o whilst_o i_o can_v distinguish_v fundamental_o in_o their_o definition_n thus_o no_o definition_n of_o a_o general_n council_n may_v be_v recede_v from_o by_o i_o for_o fear_n of_o my_o incur_v heresy_n a_o consequence_n which_o protestant_n allow_v not_o again_o since_o protestant_n affirm_v all_o fundamental_o plain_a in_o scripture_n why_o shall_v they_o place_v autocatacrisy_n or_o self-conviction_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n rather_o than_o of_o the_o scripture_n but_o to_o requite_v your_o former_a quotation_n i_o will_v show_v in_o plain_a language_n the_o state_v of_o protestant_n divine_v concern_v autocatacrisy_n as_o to_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n under_o which_o my_o opinion_n also_o find_v sufficient_a shelter_n we_o have_v no_o assurance_n at_o all_o say_v bishop_n bramball_n 105._o bramball_n reply_v to_o chalced._n p._n 105._o that_o all_o general_n council_n be_v and_o always_o shall_v be_v so_o prudent_o manage_v and_o their_o proceed_n always_o so_o orderly_o and_o upright_o that_o we_o dare_v make_v all_o their_o sentence_n a_o sufficient_a conviction_n of_o all_o christian_n which_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n i_o add_v or_o under_o pain_n of_o heresy_n and_o ib._n p._n 102._o i_o acknowledge_v say_v he_o that_o a_o general_n council_n may_v make_v that_o reveal_v truth_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o a_o christian_a as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o former_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v that_o be_v whensoever_o the_o reason_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n produce_v by_o the_o council_n or_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n which_o be_v and_o always_o aught_o to_o be_v very_o great_a with_o all_o sober_a discreet_a christian_n do_v convince_v a_o man_n in_o his_o conscience_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o council_n definition_n which_v truth_n i_o be_o as_o yet_o not_o convince_v of_o neither_o from_o the_o reason_n nor_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a or_o if_o you_o have_v rather_o have_v it_o out_o of_o dr._n potter_n it_o be_v not_o the_o resist_a say_v he_o 128._o he_o p._n 128._o the_o voice_n or_o definitive_a sentence_n which_o make_v a_o heretic_n but_o a_o obstinate_a stand_v out_o against_o evident_a scripture_n sufficient_o clear_v unto_o he_o and_o the_o scripture_n may_v then_o be_v say_v to_o be_v sufficient_o clear_v when_o it_o be_v so_o open_v that_o a_o good_a and_o teachable_a mind_n love_v and_o seek_v truth_n my_o conscience_n convince_v i_o not_o but_o that_o such_o i_o be_o can_v gainsay_v it_o again_o 129._o again_o p._n 129._o it_o be_v possible_a say_v he_o that_o the_o sentence_n of_o a_o council_n or_o church_n may_v be_v erroneous_a either_o because_o the_o opinion_n condemn_v be_v no_o heresy_n or_o error_n against_o the_o faith_n in_o itself_o consider_v or_o because_o the_o party_n so_o condemn_v be_v not_o sufficient_o convince_v in_o his_o understanding_n not_o cloud_v with_o prejudice_n ambition_n vainglory_n or_o the_o like_a passion_n that_o it_o be_v a_o error_n one_o of_o these_o i_o account_v myself_o or_o out_o of_o dr._n hammond_n 114._o hammond_n heresy_n p._n 114._o it_o must_v be_v lawful_a for_o the_o church_n of_o god_n any_o church_n or_o any_o christian_n upon_o the_o drs._n reason_n as_o well_o as_o for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o inquire_v whether_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o universal_a council_n have_v be_v agreeable_a to_o apostolical_a tradition_n or_o no_o and_o if_o they_o be_v find_v otherwise_o to_o reject_v they_o out_o or_o not_o to_o receive_v they_o into_o their_o belief_n and_o then_o still_o it_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o decree_n and_o the_o apostolicalness_n of_o they_o and_o the_o force_n of_o the_o testification_n whereby_o they_o be_v approve_v and_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v such_o which_o give_v the_o authority_n to_o the_o council_n and_o nothing_o else_o be_v sufficient_a where_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v and_o elsewhere_o he_o both_o deny_v in_o general_n a_o infallibility_n of_o council_n 6._o council_n see_v before_o disc_n 1_o §._o 6._o and_o ground_n the_o reverence_n due_a to_o the_o four_o first_o council_n on_o their_o set_n down_o and_o convince_a the_o truth_n
superior_n the_o condition_n of_o who_o communion_n contain_v nothing_o real_o erroneous_a or_o sinful_a though_o the_o doctrine_n so_o propose_v as_o the_o condition_n of_o their_o communion_n be_v apprehend_v by_o he_o to_o who_o it_o be_v thus_o propose_v to_o be_v false_a remain_v in_o schism_n soc._n and_o at_o this_o rate_n all_o those_o who_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n require_v their_o assent_n to_o what_o be_v indeed_o a_o truth_n will_v be_v schismatic_n and_o that_o whether_o in_o a_o point_n fundamental_a or_o not_o fundamental_a though_o they_o have_v use_v all_o the_o industry_n all_o the_o mean_n they_o can_v except_o this_o the_o rely_v on_o their_o superior_n judgement_n not_o to_o err_v unless_o you_o will_v say_v that_o all_o truth_n even_o not_o fundamental_a be_v in_o scripture_n so_o clear_a that_o none_o use_v a_o right_a industry_n can_v neither_o err_v in_o they_o which_o not_o chillingworth_n have_v maintain_v hitherto_o §_o 34_o prot._n but_o we_o may_v let_v this_o pass_v for_o your_o separation_n be_v in_o a_o point_n perspicuous_a enough_o in_o scripture_n and_o so_o you_o void_a of_o such_o excuse_n be_v in_o a_o point_n essential_a and_o fundamental_a and_o in_o which_o a_o wrong_a belief_n destroy_v any_o long_a communion_n of_o a_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n with_o the_o catholic_n soc._n this_o i_o utter_o deny_v nor_o see_v i_o by_o what_o way_n this_o can_v ever_o be_v prove_v against_o i_o for_o you_o can_v assign_v no_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n that_o can_v distinguish_v fundamental_o necessary_n or_o essential_o from_o those_o point_n that_o be_v not_o so_o as_o have_v be_v show_v already_o and_o as_o mr._n stillingfleet_n 73._o stillingfleet_n p._n 73._o urge_v concern_v heresy_n so_o may_v i_o concern_v schism_n what_o be_v the_o measure_n whereby_o we_o ought_v to_o judge_v what_o thing_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o be_v of_o christianity_n or_o of_o the_o church_n whether_o must_v the_o church_n judgement_n be_v take_v or_o every_o man_n own_o judgement_n if_o the_o former_a the_o ground_n of_o schism_n lie_v still_o in_o the_o church_n definition_n contrary_a to_o what_o protestant_n affirm_v if_o the_o latter_a then_o no_o one_o can_v be_v a_o schismatic_a but_o he_o that_o oppose_v that_o of_o which_o he_o be_v or_o may_v be_v convince_v that_o it_o be_v a_o fundamental_a or_o essential_a matter_n of_o faith_n if_o he_o be_v only_o a_o schismatic_a that_o oppose_v that_o of_o which_o he_o be_v convince_v then_o no_o man_n be_v a_o schismatic_a but_o he_o that_o go_v against_o his_o present_a judgement_n and_o so_o there_o will_v be_v few_o schismatic_n in_o the_o world_n if_o he_o that_o oppose_v that_o which_o he_o may_v be_v convince_v of_o then_o again_o it_o be_v that_o which_o he_o may_v be_v convince_v of_o either_o in_o the_o church_n judgement_n or_o in_o his_o own_o if_o in_o the_o church_n it_o come_v to_o the_o same_o issue_n as_o in_o the_o former_a if_o in_o his_o own_o how_o i_o pray_v shall_v i_o know_v that_o i_o may_v be_v convince_v of_o what_o use_v a_o due_a endeavour_n i_o be_o not_o convince_v already_o or_o how_o shall_v i_o know_v when_o a_o due_a industry_n be_v use_v and_o if_o i_o can_v know_v this_o how_o shall_v i_o ever_o settle_v myself_o unless_o it_o be_v upon_o authority_n which_o you_o allow_v not_o again_o i_o be_o teach_v that_o any_o particular_a whether_o person_n or_o church_n may_v judge_v for_o themselves_o with_o the_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n and_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o christian_a communion_n 292._o communion_n stillingf_n p._n 292._o that_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o unreasonable_a than_o that_o the_o society_n suppose_v it_o be_v a_o council_n impose_v condition_n of_o its_o communion_n suppose_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a impose_v consubstantialiity_n so_o shall_v be_v judge_n whether_o those_o condition_n be_v just_a and_o equitable_a or_o no_o and_o especial_o in_o this_o case_n where_o a_o considerable_a body_n of_o christian_n judge_v such_o thing_n require_v to_o be_v unlawful_a condition_n of_o communion_n what_o justice_n or_o reason_n be_v there_o that_o the_o party_n accuse_v shall_v sit_v judge_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n prot._n by_o this_o way_n no_o separatist_n can_v ever_o be_v a_o schismatic_a if_o he_o be_v constitute_v the_o judge_n whether_o the_o reason_n of_o his_o separation_n be_v just_a soc._n and_o in_o the_o other_o way_n there_o can_v never_o be_v any_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n at_o all_o if_o the_o church-governor_n from_o who_o i_o separate_v be_v to_o judge_v whether_o that_o be_v a_o error_n for_o which_o i_o separate_v §_o 35_o prot._n it_o seem_v something_o that_o you_o say_v but_o yet_o though_o upon_o such_o consideration_n a_o free_a use_n of_o your_o own_o judgement_n as_o to_o provide_v for_o your_o own_o salvation_n be_v grant_v you_o yet_o methinks_v in_o this_o matter_n you_o have_v some_o great_a cause_n to_o suspect_v it_o since_o several_a church_n have_v of_o late_o take_v liberty_n to_o examine_v by_o god_n word_n more_o strict_o the_o corrupt_a doctrine_n of_o former_a age_n yet_o these_o reform_a as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o unreformed_a stand_v opposite_a to_o you_o and_o neither_o those_o profess_v to_o follow_v the_o scripture_n nor_o those_o profess_v to_o follow_v tradition_n and_o church_n authority_n neither_o those_o require_v strict_a obedience_n and_o submission_n of_o judgement_n nor_o those_o indulge_v christian_n liberty_n countenance_n your_o doctrine_n but_o you_o stand_v also_o reformer_n of_o the_o reformation_n and_o separate_v from_o all_o soc._n soft_a a_o little_a though_o i_o stand_v separate_v indeed_o from_o the_o present_a unreformed_a church_n or_o also_o if_o you_o will_v from_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o be_v before_o luther_n yet_o i_o both_o enjoy_v the_o external_a communion_n and_o think_v i_o have_v reason_n to_o account_v myself_o a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n reform_v and_o as_o i_o never_o condemn_v they_o or_o think_v salvation_n not_o attainable_a in_o they_o so_o neither_o be_o i_o that_o i_o know_v of_o exclude_v by_o or_o from_o they_o so_o long_o as_o i_o retain_v my_o opinion_n in_o silence_n and_o do_v not_o disturb_v their_o peace_n and_o i_o take_v myself_o also_o on_o these_o term_n to_o be_v a_o member_n in_o particular_a of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n wherein_o i_o have_v be_v educate_v for_o all_o these_o church_n as_o confess_v themselves_o fallible_a in_o their_o decree_n do_v not_o require_v of_o their_o subject_n to_o yield_v any_o internal_a assent_n to_o their_o doctrine_n or_o to_o profess_v any_o thing_n against_o their_o conscience_n and_o in_o hypocrisy_n and_o do_v forbear_v to_o use_v that_o tyranny_n upon_o any_o for_o enjoy_v their_o communion_n which_o they_o so_o much_o condemn_v in_o that_o church_n from_o which_o for_o this_o very_a thing_n they_o be_v force_v to_o part_v communion_n and_o to_o reform_v of_o this_o matter_n thus_o mr._n whitby_n 100_o whitby_n p._n 100_o who_o do_v our_o convocation_n ever_o damn_v for_o not_o internal_o receive_v their_o decree_n do_v they_o not_o leave_v every_o man_n to_o the_o liberty_n of_o his_o judgement_n they_o do_v not_o require_v that_o we_o shall_v in_o all_o thing_n believe_v as_o they_o believe_v but_o that_o we_o shall_v submit_v to_o their_o determination_n and_o not_o contradict_v they_o their_o decision_n be_v not_o obtrude_v as_o infallible_a oracle_n but_o only_o submit_v to_o in_o order_n to_o peace_n and_o unity_n so_o that_o their_o work_n be_v rather_o to_o silence_n than_o to_o determine_v dispute_n etc._n etc._n and_z p._n 438._o we_o grant_v a_o necessity_n or_o at_o least_o a_o convenience_n of_o a_o tribunal_n to_o decide_v controversy_n but_o how_o not_o by_o cause_v any_o person_n to_o believe_v what_o he_o do_v not_o antecedent_o to_o these_o decree_n upon_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o the_o council_n but_o by_o silence_v our_o dispute_n and_o make_v we_o acquiesce_v in_o what_o be_v propound_v without_o any_o public_a opposition_n to_o it_o keep_v our_o opinion_n to_o ourselves_o a_o liberty_n of_o use_v private_a discretion_n in_o approve_v or_o reject_v any_o thing_n as_o deliver_v or_o not_o in_o scripture_n we_o think_v aught_o to_o be_v allow_v for_o faith_n can_v be_v compel_v and_o by_o take_v away_o this_o liberty_n from_o man_n we_o shall_v force_v they_o to_o become_v hypocrite_n and_o so_o profess_v outward_o what_o inward_o they_o disbelieve_v and_o see_v mr._n stillingfleet_v rational_a account_n p._n 104._o where_o speak_v of_o the_o obligation_n to_o the_o 39_o article_n he_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n excommunicate_v such_o as_o open_o oppose_v her_o doctrine_n suppose_v her_o fallible_a the_o roman_a church_n excommunicate_v all_o who_o will_v not_o believe_v whatever_o she_o define_v to_o be_v infallible_o
justius_fw-la res_fw-la nostras_fw-la aestimare_fw-la non_fw-la ex_fw-la uno_fw-la aut_fw-la altero_fw-la eorum_fw-la qui_fw-la ad_fw-la veritatem_fw-la bawd_n recto_fw-la pede_fw-la ingrediuntur_fw-la sedex_fw-la multitudine_fw-la totius_fw-la orbis_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la qui_fw-la gratiâ_fw-la christi_fw-la conjuncti_fw-la nobis_fw-la sùnt_fw-la vnamines_fw-la omnes_fw-la eodemque_fw-la sensu_fw-la praediti_fw-la sumus_fw-la itaque_fw-la si_fw-la cuique_fw-la communionem_fw-la nostram_fw-la fugit_fw-la ne_fw-la prudentiam_fw-la vestram_fw-la lateat_fw-la ab_fw-la universâ_fw-la illum_fw-la ecclesiâsese_v divulsisse_fw-la 3._o §._o 27._o n._n 3._o and_o now_o by_o this_o relation_n may_v be_v understand_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o those_o place_n of_o the_o father_n that_o be_v urge_v for_o a_o defection_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n in_o these_o time_n from_o the_o true_a faith_n which_o as_o they_o be_v now_o press_v by_o many_o protestant_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n so_o some_o of_o they_o be_v ancient_o by_o the_o donatist_n against_o s._n austin_n to_o who_o 48._o epistle_n i_o refer_v you_o to_o peruse_v his_o answer_n when_o therefore_o s._n hierom_n say_v luciferianos_fw-la say_v dialog-adv_a luciferianos_fw-la tunc_fw-la after_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n usiae_fw-la nom●●_n abolitum_fw-la est_fw-la tunc_fw-la nicaenae_fw-la fidei_fw-la damnatio_fw-la conclamata_fw-la est_fw-la and_o nomine_fw-la unitatis_fw-la &_o fidei_fw-la infidelitas_fw-la soripta_fw-la est_fw-la he_o mean_v i●fidelit●s_n etc._n etc._n according_a to_o that_o sense_n and_o gloss_n as_o the_o emperor_n and_o arrian_n party_n make_v of_o the_o decree_n after_o the_o council_n end_v say_v also_o ingemuit_fw-la totus_fw-la orbis_n totus_fw-la orbis_n because_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n at_o constantinople_n as_o well_o as_o the_o west_n before_o they_o at_o ariminum_n by_o the_o same_o fraud_n make_v the_o same_o subscription_n &_o miratus_fw-la est_fw-la se_fw-la esse_fw-la arianum_n see_v the_o like_a comment_n in_o galat._n 5.9_o arianum_n i._n e._n quite_o contrary_a to_o their_o intention_n and_o sense_n and_o by_o a_o interpretation_n of_o some_o part_n of_o the_o decree_n so_o as_o it_o contradict_v another_o therefore_o also_o ibid._n he_o say_v how_o afterward_o concurrebant_fw-la episcopi_fw-la qui_fw-la ariminensibus_fw-la do_v lie_fw-la irretiti_fw-la sine_fw-la conscientiâ_fw-la haeretici_fw-la ferebantur_fw-la contestantes_fw-la corpus_fw-la domini_fw-la &_o quicquid_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la sanctum_fw-la est_fw-la se_fw-la nihil_fw-la mali_fw-la in_o suâ_fw-la fide_fw-la suspicatos_fw-la whence_o he_o expostulate_v with_o the_o luciferian_o cur_n damnassent_v eos_fw-la qui_fw-la ariani_n non_fw-la erant_fw-la cur_n ecclesiam_fw-la scinderent_fw-la in_o concordiâ_fw-la fidei_fw-la permanentem_fw-la etc._n etc._n from_o which_o may_v be_v gather_v the_o meaning_n of_o several_a passage_n urge_v etc._n urge_v see_v tillot_n rule_n of_o faith_n p._n 167_o etc._n etc._n out_o of_o his_o chronicon_fw-la declare_v the_o establishment_n of_o arrianism_n in_o the_o arimine_fw-la or_o sirmian_n council_n and_o out_o of_o his_o dialogue_n against_o the_o luciferian_o of_o the_o confessor_n but_o a_o few_o admit_v all_o the_o rest_n to_o their_o communion_n which_o he_o say_v there_o express_o be_v do_v non_fw-la quod_fw-la episcopi_fw-la possent_fw-la esse_fw-la qui_fw-la haeretici_fw-la fuerant_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la constaret_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la reciperentur_fw-la haereticos_fw-la non_fw-la fuisse_fw-la so_o liberius_n his_o word_n 11._o word_n apud_fw-la socr●_n l._n 4._o c._n 11._o omnes_fw-la illi_fw-la ferè_fw-la episcopi_fw-la qui_fw-la arimini_fw-la convenerant_fw-la quique_fw-la vel_fw-la fallacibus_fw-la inescati_fw-la illecebris_fw-la vel_fw-la vi_fw-la compulsi_fw-la à_fw-la fide_fw-la tum_fw-la quidem_fw-la desciveraut_v etc._n etc._n with_o who_o he_o also_o join_v the_o oriental_a orthodox_n bishop_n to_o who_o he_o write_v quibus_fw-la item_n vos_fw-la per_fw-la versutas_fw-la blanditias_fw-la &c_n &c_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v only_o of_o their_o fail_v from_o such_o a_o plenary_a confession_n of_o their_o faith_n as_o their_o christian_a duty_n oblige_v they_o to_o who_o i_o do_v not_o go_v about_o here_o to_o excuse_v from_o all_o fault_n but_o from_o heresy_n and_o such_o expression_n as_o these_o subscriptionem_fw-la pristinam_fw-la damnabant_fw-la fidei_fw-la formulae_fw-la ariminensi_fw-la anathema_n denunciârunt_fw-la to_o be_v understand_v that_o they_o condemn_v it_o not_o as_o in_o their_o own_o former_a sense_n false_a but_o as_o by_o the_o late_a arrian_n sense_n pervert_v in_o the_o same_o sense_n be_v those_o thing_n say_v by_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n ‖_o severus_n ‖_o and_o other_o to_o be_v expound_v and_o those_o passage_n of_o nazianzen_n 2._o nazianzen_n hist_o l._n 2._o 6._o c_o 6._o where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o comply_a lapse_n of_o many_o of_o the_o too-credulous_a eastern_a bishop_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o father_n yet_o always_o constant_o catholic_n as_o for_o s._n b●sils_n sad_a complaint_n patris_fw-la complaint_n in_o orat._n de_fw-fr laud._n than_o &_o d●_n sunere_fw-la patris_fw-la of_o the_o overflow_n of_o arrianism_n to_o which_o may_v be_v add_v several_a in_o nazianzen_n etc._n nazianzen_n epist_n 71._o etc._n etc._n they_o be_v make_v concern_v the_o time_n of_o valens_n and_o then_o concern_v the_o east_n subject_v to_o his_o power_n arrian_n *_o orat._n in_o arrian_n when_o can_v be_v no_o question_n as_o to_o the_o church_n universal_a of_o the_o major_a part_n of_o its_o prelate_n their_o profess_v the_o catholic_n faith_n of_o which_o see_v his_o forequoted_a epistle_n 75.293_o epistle_n epist_n 75.293_o as_o neither_o can_v there_o be_v of_o the_o time_n before_o ariminum_n as_o to_o the_o west_n the_o persecution_n then_o be_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o athanasius_n not_o of_o the_o nicene_n faith_n so_o that_o how_o long_o soever_o the_o arrian_n error_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v continue_v as_o it_o have_v to_o this_o day_n in_o the_o mahometan_n and_o of_o late_a the_o socinian_o yet_o the_o great_a eclipse_n which_o the_o nicene_n faith_n may_v be_v think_v to_o have_v suffer_v thereby_o be_v only_o from_o ariminum_n to_o the_o restorement_n of_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n make_v by_o inlian_a i.e._n for_o the_o space_n of_o three_o year_n though_o then_o also_o the_o light_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o extinguish_v but_o only_o obscure_v because_o remove_v out_o of_o their_o candlestick_n and_o what_o have_v be_v say_v here_o of_o the_o catholick_n subscription_n to_o the_o arrian_n form_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v say_v of_o their_o communion_n also_o with_o they_o which_o last_v only_o for_o that_o small_a time_n that_o they_o imagine_v they_o from_o the_o addition_n make_v to_o the_o form_n at_o ariminum_n and_o before_o the_o manifest_v of_o their_o equivocation_n good_a catholic_n last_o one_o thing_n more_o in_o this_o arrian_n defection_n be_v very_o considerable_a that_o the_o anti-nicene_n faction_n divide_v present_o into_o two_o sect_n as_o be_v usual_a to_o those_o who_o leave_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n the_o arrian_n and_o the_o semi-arrians_a which_o sect_n persecute_v excommunicate_v eject_v out_o of_o their_o chair_n one_o another_o now_o one_o of_o the_o property_n of_o the_o church-catholick_n in_o the_o creed_n be_v its_o unity_n credo_fw-la unam_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o the_o discern_a of_o it_o always_o from_o other_o society_n by_o its_o more_o eminent_a magnitude_n and_o extent_n it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o of_o all_o those_o body_n or_o church_n that_o can_v any_o way_n pretend_v to_o this_o property_n and_o that_o be_v any_o way_n unite_v within_o themselves_o and_o contradistinct_a to_o other_o it_o be_v the_o great_a still_o and_o most_o diffuse_a as_o if_o of_o the_o two_o divide_a party_n neither_o the_o arrian_n nor_o semi-arrian_a equal_v the_o catholic_n though_o by_o the_o whole_a mass_n of_o all_o these_o body_n that_o fight_n with_o one_o another_o cast_v up_o together_o it_o shall_v be_v exceed_v of_o which_o see_v what_o be_v say_v before_o §_o 26._o n._n 1._o i_o have_v contrary_a to_o my_o first_o intention_n relate_v this_o matter_n more_o at_o large_a as_o well_o know_v this_o defection_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o arrianism_n to_o be_v the_o main_a or_o only_a instance_n wherewith_o protestant_n seek_v to_o countenance_v that_o late_a and_o more_o universal_a defection_n which_o many_o of_o they_o charge_n upon_o it_o since_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n from_o a.d._n 600._o or_o soon_o till_o the_o come_n of_o luther_n a_o defection_n as_o some_o say_v of_o above_o a_o thousand_o year_n durance_n now_o to_o return_v to_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n 13._o from_o these_o thing_n catholic_n infer_v 13._o infer_v 27._o n._n 4._o prop._n 13._o that_o both_o the_o decree_n in_o a_o council_n and_o acceptation_n of_o they_o out_o of_o it_o make_v by_o a_o much_o major_a part_n of_o the_o church-governor_n especial_o this_o major_a part_n also_o be_v join_v to_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v undeniable_o to_o conclude_v the_o whole_a and_o that_o all_o the_o obedience_n foremention_v be_v
due_a to_o this_o much_o great_a though_o some_o small_a part_n dissent_v and_o that_o a_o opposition_n of_o their_o definition_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n become_v heresy_n and_o a_o separation_n from_o their_o communion_n upon_o their_o require_v a_o approbation_n of_o and_o conformity_n to_o such_o their_o decree_n become_v schism_n if_o a_o opposition_n to_o or_o separation_n from_o the_o whole_a be_v so_o §_o 28_o 14._o as_o for_o that_o way_n or_o those_o mark_n that_o be_v give_v usual_o by_o protestant_n 9_o protestant_n see_v calv._n instit_fw-la l._n 4_o c._n 1._o §._o 9_o by_o which_o christian_n be_v to_o discern_v 14._o prop._n 14._o in_o any_o division_n of_o they_o the_o society_n of_o the_o true_a church_n guide_v whether_o these_o happen_v to_o be_v more_o or_o few_o of_o a_o high_a or_o low_a rank_n than_o the_o other_o as_o they_o say_v sometime_o they_o may_v be_v the_o one_o sometime_o the_o other_o from_o the_o false_a namely_o these_o two_o 1_o the_o right_a teach_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n 2_o and_o right_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 1_o if_o any_o be_v direct_v to_o find_v out_o by_o these_o mark_v those_o guide_n not_o only_o who_o communion_n they_o ought_v to_o join_v with_o but_o from_o who_o judgement_n they_o ought_v to_o learn_v which_o be_v the_o same_o true_a christian_a doctrine_n and_o which_o the_o right_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n i.e._n be_v by_o those_o mark_n first_o know_v to_o find_v out_o those_o person_n by_o who_o they_o may_v come_v to_o know_v these_o mark_n as_o for_o example_n if_o one_o that_o seek_v a_o guide_n to_o direct_v he_o what_o he_o be_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o god_n the_o son_n with_o the_o father_n be_v first_o to_o try_v if_o consubstantiality_n be_v true_a and_o then_o to_o choose_v he_o for_o his_o guide_n in_o this_o point_n that_o hold_v it_o the_o very_a proposal_n of_o this_o way_n seem_v a_o sufficient_a confutation_n of_o it_o for_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o decide_v that_o first_o themselves_o for_o the_o decision_n of_o which_o they_o seek_v to_o another_o judgement_n and_o there_o be_v no_o question_n but_o after_o this_o they_o will_v in_o a_o search_n pitch_v on_o a_o judge_n that_o decide_v as_o they_o do_v but_o then_o this_o be_v seek_v for_o a_o confederate_a for_o a_o companion_n not_o seek_v for_o a_o guide_n for_o a_o governor_n when_o they_o can_v state_n the_o true_a doctrine_n themselves_o their_o search_n for_o a_o guide_n to_o state_n it_o be_v at_o a_o end_n and_o they_o may_v then_o search_v rather_o to_o who_o to_o teach_v it_o than_o of_o who_o to_o learn_v it_o it_o be_v grant_v indeed_o 1._o §._o 29._o n._n 1._o suppose_v the_o mark_n abovenamed_a be_v only_o to_o be_v find_v among_o the_o right_a church-guide_n which_o be_v not_o so_o 2._o so_o see_v §._o 29_o n._n 2._o that_o these_o right_a guide_n may_v be_v discern_v from_o false_a by_o this_o mark_n i.e._n by_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o reach_v by_o so_o many_o as_o can_v attain_v the_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o this_o true_a doctrine_n by_o some_o other_o mean_n or_o way_n as_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n father_n etc._n etc._n nor_o be_v private_a man_n try_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o these_o differ_a guide_n by_o these_o deny_v here_o to_o be_v lawful_a nor_o deny_v that_o the_o proposal_n of_o such_o a_o trial_n to_o the_o people_n may_v by_o the_o true_a guide_n even_o by_o the_o apostle_n be_v make_v use_n of_o with_o good_a success_n because_o the_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n may_v evidence_n to_o some_o person_n intelligent_a in_o some_o controversy_n less_o difficult_a the_o truth_n of_o those_o doctrine_n which_o some_o of_o the_o learned_a out_o of_o great_a passion_n or_o interest_n may_v gainsay_v but_o then_o for_o all_o such_o point_n wherein_o a_o private_a man_n trial_n by_o scripture_n be_v very_o liable_a to_o mistake_v and_o the_o sense_n thereof_o not_o clear_a unto_o he_o as_o no_o private_a person_n have_v reason_n to_o think_v it_o clear_a in_o such_o point_n of_o controversy_n wherein_o the_o church-guide_n examine_v the_o same_o scripture_n yet_o do_v differ_v among_o themselves_o and_o perhaps_o the_o major_a part_n of_o they_o from_o he_o here_o he_o must_v necessary_o attain_v the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o right_a guide_n by_o some_o other_o mark_v prescribe_v he_o for_o that_o purpose_n and_o not_o by_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o doctrine_n or_o clearness_n of_o those_o scripture_n for_o instruction_n in_o the_o truth_n or_o sense_n of_o which_o he_o seek_v such_o a_o guide_n unsound_a therefore_o be_v that_o position_n of_o mr._n stillingfleet_n rat._n account_v p._n 7._o that_o of_o necessity_n the_o rule_n i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v and_o by_o it_o the_o truth_n of_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n must_v be_v certain_o know_v before_o ever_o any_o one_o can_v with_o safety_n depend_v upon_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o church_n and_o very_o infirm_a that_o argue_v of_o his_o and_o so_o all_o that_o he_o afterward_o build_v upon_o it_o where_o he_o deduce_v from_o this_o proposition_n concede_v that_o a_o church_n which_o have_v err_v can_v be_v rely_v on_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n therefore_o man_n must_v be_v satisfy_v wh●ther_o a_o church_n have_v err_v or_o no_o before_o they_o can_v judge_v whether_o she_o may_v be_v rely_v o●_n or_o no_o for_o though_o this_o be_v allow_v here_o that_o such_o church_n as_o may_v be_v rely_v on_o have_v among_o other_o property_n or_o sure_a mark_n this_o for_o one_o that_o she_o do_v not_o or_o can_v err_v yet_o many_o other_o mark_v or_o property_n she_o may_v have_v by_o which_o man_n may_v be_v assure_v she_o may_v be_v rely_v on_o who_o be_v not_o first_o able_a to_o discern_v or_o prove_v all_o her_o doctrine_n for_o truth_n or_o demonstrate_v she_o not_o err_v such_o argue_v be_v muchwhat_a like_a to_o this_o that_o body_n which_o cast_v no_o light_n can_v be_v fire_n therefore_o a_o man_n must_v first_o be_v satisfy_v whether_o such_o a_o body_n give_v light_a before_o he_o can_v judge_v whether_o it_o be_v fire_n not_o so_o because_o one_o blind_a and_o not_o see_v the_o light_n at_o all_o yet_o may_v certain_o know_v it_o be_v fire_n by_o another_o property_n by_o its_o scorch_a heat_n or_o like_o this_o no_o book_n than_o contain_v any_o false_a proposition_n in_o it_o can_v be_v the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n therefore_o man_n must_v be_v satisfy_v whether_o such_o book_n contain_v any_o false_a proposition_n in_o it_o or_o no_o before_o they_o can_v judge_v whether_o it_o be_v the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n or_o no._n not_o so_o for_o man_n ordinary_o by_o another_o way_n viz._n universal_a tradition_n become_v assure_v that_o such_o book_n be_v holy_a scripture_n and_o thence_o collect_v that_o it_o contain_v nothing_o in_o it_o contradictory_n or_o false_a and_o so_o it_o be_v for_o the_o true_a church_n or_o our_o true_a guide_n that_o though_o she_o always_o conserve_v truth_n yet_o man_n come_v to_o know_v she_o by_o another_o way_n and_o of_o she_o first_o know_v afterward_o learn_v that_o truth_n which_o she_o conserve_v but_o 2_o these_o protestant_a mark_n viz._n truth_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o right_a administration_n of_o sacrament_n 2._o §._o 29._o n._n 2._o if_o we_o can_v attain_v a_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o they_o another_o way_n and_o need_v not_o to_o learn_v they_o from_o the_o church_n yet_o be_v no_o infallible_a mark_n of_o that_o catholic_n body_n and_o society_n to_o which_o christian_n may_v secure_o adhere_v and_o rank_n themselves_o in_o its_o communion_n because_o such_o body_n when_o entire_o profess_v the_o christian_a faith_n yet_o still_o may_v be_v schismatical_a and_o some_o way_n guilty_a of_o dissolve_v the_o christian_a unity_n as_o dr._n field_n among_o other_o free_o concede_v who_o 33._o who_o of_o the_o ch._n l_o 2._o c._n 2._o p._n 31._o 33._o therefore_o to_o make_v up_o as_o he_o say_v the_o note_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n absolute_a full_a and_o perfect_a and_o general_o diginguish_v this_o church_n from_o all_o other_o society_n add_v to_o these_o two_o the_o entire_a profession_n of_o save_a faith_n and_o the_o right_a use_n of_o sacrament_n a_o three_o mark_v viz._n a_o union_n or_o connexion_n of_o man_n in_o this_o profession_n and_o use_v of_o these_o sacrament_n under_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o guide_n appoint_v and_o authorize_v to_o direct_v and_o lead_v they_o in_o the_o happy_a way_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n which_o pastor_n lawful_o authorize_v he_o 14._o he_o l._n 1._o c._n 14._o grant_v those_o not_o to_o be_v who_o though_o they_o have_v power_n of_o order_n yet_o have_v no_o power_n of_o